^^
^o.
4 ^
o^'f'^r^.V*'^'^"'
%,^^ -
,G
^^'
^ - V-
^
-.^^^
<^^ ^^
^ ' ' ' ' V^^ ^ ^ " " / ^/-i
^o.
^
"< * * s ^ • -iM <> '
c ^^..
cCC^^^'^o -^^ .' <^ ^^ *,. s'> A^
^. ..V
-%
'^t. o'
r^
^
y> -* '^ / * i s ^ A^ v^- ■' * * ^ ,-^ V * .. <*
< " ^
/
BOSTON AND NEW YORK
HOUGHTON, MIFFLIN AND COMPANY
1893
Copyright, 1893,
By ALFRED M. WILLIAMS.
All rights reserved.
The Riverside Press, Cambridge Mass., XT. S. A.
Electrotyped and Printed by H. O. Houghton & Co.
PKEFACE
My purpose in writing the life of Sam Houston
and a history of the War of Independence in Texas
has been to give as accurate a picture as was in my
poT\er of a very remarkable and interesting per-
sonality, and a period of great importance in the
growth and character of the nation. Houston pos-
sessed very strong and original qualities as well as
very apparent weaknesses and limitations, and his
character and conduct often deserved censure as well
as discriminating approval. He had many devoted
partisans, attracted by his achievements and personal
magnetism, as well as bitter enemies, created by his
sharp tongue and masterful temperament, and the
written records and estimates of him vary from ex-
travagant and often fulsome eulogy to the harshest de-
preciation and the most envenomed attack. In later
years the detraction and animosity are dying away,
and he is becoming a somewhat mythical hero, who
represents the traditional pride of a community, and
embodies the reverence of a heroic history. But the
remembrance of his impressive and original per-
sonality is still strong among the contemporaries of
his later years, and the anecdotes and reminiscences
iv PREFACE
which are orally current give the illustrative charac-
teristics of the man, in spite of the exaggeration and
invention which grow up about them. I believe that
I have read all the books which relate to Houston's
career, beside consulting a large number of the files
of contemporary newspapers, letters, speeches, and
pamphlets by himseK and his associates. I have also
conversed with many who knew him personally, and
who have given me facts and anecdotes which have
never been published. I have examined the archives
of the Republic and State of Texas in the Capitol at
Austin, and the records of the national Congress,
while he was a member. The facts in regard to his
life among the Cherokees in the Indian Territory
were obtained from the lips of aged Indians who re-
membered him, and particularly from the late Judge
Riley Keys, an intelligent Cherokee, who was familiar
with him during his residence with the tribe. I have
endeavored to be impartial as well as accurate, and to
present the man as he was, with his faults as well as
his virtues, and his failures and errors as well as his
successes and achievements. I have used those anec-
dotes and incidents which, however apparently tri-
fling, reveal the man as an individual and in his daily
life as well as in his public career, and have not sup-
pressed or modified those which would show the weak-
nesses which contrasted with his strong and admirable
qualities. It is needless to say that there is no other
course to be taken for the truth of history or for intel-
ligent biography. Houston is strong enough to endure
PREFACE V
an unflattering portrait, and the interest in his individ-
uality, and as the type and product of his time and
circumstances, depends upon the absolute accuracy of
the resemblance.
The history of the War of Independence in Texas
has been several times written. The most elaborate
and valuable account is that of Plenderson Yoakum,
who had access to the original documents, and was
familiar with many of the actors in the military and
legislative history of the Republic of Texas. He is
honest and accurate, and although later researches
have corrected some errors, his volumes will remain
the principal storehouse of information in regard
to the events of the period. William Kennedy, a
Scotchman and British consul at Galveston, preceded
Yoakum, and his History of the Republic of Texas
contains many original documents and much valuable
information. Senator Henry G. Foote, of Mississippi,
wrote his volumes on " Texas and the Texans " rather
in the style of a controversial and oratorical pamphlet
to favor annexation than a sober history, although
they possess some value in the journals and accounts
of participants in the events. Mr. H. H. Bancroft,
with his customary industry and accuracy, has investi-
gated the history of Texas in American and Mexican
sources, and published the results in his " History of
the North Mexican States and Texas." Rev. H. G.
Thrall has given some useful statistical and other
information in his " Pictorial History of Texas."
There are a considerable number of personal memoirs
vi PREFACE
and sketclies which give accounts of individual a<;-
tions during the time, and the reminiscences of those
who took part in the events. The series of the
" Texas Almanac," published at Galveston, is espe-
cially valuable as giving the accounts of personal sur-
vivors of the war, although they are often colored by
prejudice and sometimes contradictory in statement.
The period was a heroic one in the achievement
of personal vigor and daring. The defense of the
Alamo will always be reckoned as one of the most
striking examples of desperate and determined valor
in all history, and the fight at San Jacinto conclu-
sively demonstrated the superiority of the Anglo-
American race over the Hispano-Mexican. There
was much turbulence and lawlessness among the ad-
venturers from the United States and the original
settlers, and schemes for conquest which had no pa-
triotic motive, and there was the uncertainty and
irregularity of action inevitable to a people carrying
on the war by volunteer levies rather than by disci-
plined armies. But the war for the independence of
Texas was not in its governing character a filibuster
enterprise, whatever may have been the motives and
purposes of some of its leaders, but was the result of
the oppression and jealousy of the Mexican authori-
ties compelling resistance, and the conditions which
inevitably brought the American colonists into con-
flict with those of an inferior calibre and alien institu-
tions and habits. It was fought with courage and
determination and on the whole with practical wis-
PREFACE vii
dom, and was creditable to the race as well as to the
community.
I am indebted to ex-Senator Jobn H. Reagan, to
ex-Governors F. A Lubbock and O. M. Roberts, of
Austin, to Hon. Hamilton Stuart, of Galveston, to
Hon. E. W. Cave and Judge Alexander McGowan, of
Houston, and to many others in Texas, for anecdotes
and reminiscences of Houston. I am much indebted
to Judge C. W. Raines of the Agricultural and Sta^
tistical Department at Austin for assistance in exam-
ining the archives and newspaper files at the Capitol.
I owe my earnest thanks to my friends James A.
Hervey, of Medford, Mass., and James Jeffrey Roche,
of Boston, for advice and assistance in the details of
the book. A list of the books relating to Houston
and the history of Texas will be found at the end of
the volume.
Providence, R. 1., June 23, 1893.
CONTENTS
CHAPTER PAGE
I. Boyhood and Youth ...... 1
II. The Young Soldier 11
III. Member of Congress and Governor of Tennes-
see 22
IV. Indian Life — the Stanberry Affair . . .37
V. Texas at the Beginning of the Struggle for
Independence 53
VI. Houston's Arrival in Texas — the Outbreak
of the War 74-
VII. Battle of Concepcion — Capture op San Antonio 97
VIII. Organization of the Provisional Government —
Houston elected Commander-in-Chief . .117
IX. Fall of the Alamo — Creation of the Republic 137
X. The Massacre of Goliad 161
XT. San Jacinto 184
XII. First Term as President 218
XIII. Second Term as President — Annexation . 249
XIV. Senator of the United States .... 296
XV. Governor of Texas — Secession .... 333
XVI. Last Years — Death 363
XVII. Cbl!Iracteristics 378
Bibliography . . 397
Index 401
SAM HOUSTON
AND
THE WAR OF INDEPENDENCE IN TEXAS
CHAPTER I
BOYHOOD AND YOUTH
Samuel, or as he called and signed himself, and as
he is known in the familiar language of history, Sam
Houston, was born on the 2d of March, 1793, at a place
called Timber Ridge Church, about seven miles east of
Lexing-ton, in Rockbridge County, Virginia. He came
from that strong and sturdy Scotch-Irish stock which
has given so many notable names to American history
and exercised so powerful an influence in the forma-
tive period of the nation. There was a good deal in
Sam Houston's character and temperament to indicate
a Celtic admixture in the somewhat dour and sober
strain of the Presbyterian Scotch-Irish, but there is no
name in the records of the family genealogy to indicate
it, and it must have been from very remote atavism
or the accident of individual constitution. The Hous-
ton family was of Lowland-Scotch origin, of sufficient
rank to have a coat of arms, and representatives of
its branches have occupied positions of provincial im-
2 SAM HOUSTON
portance. There is a family tradition that its repre-
sentative took part in the defense of Londonderry, but
as there is also one that John Houston, the founder
of the American branch of the family, came to this
country in 1689, the year of the siege, this may be
considered as doubtful so far as the immediate ances-
tor of Houston is concerned. The name of James
Huston is, however, to be found attached to the
loyal address to King William by the defenders of
Londonderry signed the 29th of July, 1689. John
Houston, who was possessed of considerable means
and was apparently the leader of an emigrant colony
of his compatriots, settled in Philadelphia, and left a
numerous family of children. His grandson Robert
Houston removed to Virginia, purchased a consider-
able tract of land in Rockbridge County, and married
a lady of the Scotch families of Davidson and Dunlop.
He also left a numerous family, who became con-
nected with the representatives of the gentry of the
neighborhood. His son Samuel inherited the estate
and married a Miss Elisabeth Paxton, whose family
had been associated with his own in the emigration
from Ireland and its subsequent life in America.
The position of the family in Virginia was evidently
not that of the manorial gentry of the seaboard and
eastern river valleys, but that of the wealthier farmers
of the interior, who lived in rude plenty mainly by
their own labor, and formed a class of substantial and
independent yeomen. Samuel Houston served with
credit, if not with great distinction, in General Daniel
BOYHOOD AND YOUTH 3
Morgan's brigade of riflemen during the Revolution-
ary War, and at its close was appointed Major and
Assistant Inspector - General of the frontier troops.
He died while on a toui' of duty in the Alleghany
Mountains in 1806, leaving his widow with a family
of six sons and three daughters. Tradition describes
Major Houston as a man of large frame, command- 1,
ing presence, indomitable courage and a passion for
military life. Mrs. Houston was also remarkable for
her magnificent physique, and was a woman of great
force of character, respected and beloved in the
neighborhood for her benevolence and helpfulness,
and impressing her individuality and influence deeply
upon the mind and memory of the most distinguished
of her children, who always spoke of her with rev-
erence and affection. After the death of her hus-
band, with the vigor and energy characteristic of that
pioneer age, she determined to remove to the new
settlements in Tennessee ; and with her young family,
Sam being then thirteen years of age, she crossed the
Alleghany Mountains, and settled in Blount County at
a point eight miles east of the Tennessee Eiver, then
the boundary between the tribe of Cherokee Indians
and their white neighbors. Here a cabin was built, a
clearing was opened, and the family lived in the rude
and toilsome frontier fashion, while wresting a living
from the wilderness.
Houston's reminiscences of his boyhood included a
few months of schooling in what was called the " Old
Field School," kept in a dilapidated building in the
4 SAM HOUSTON
neighborhood, once occupied by Washington 4M^ver-
n-via^ -^i^? which had been removed to Lexington ; and that
' he used to run from his work in the fields to take his
place in the spelling class. Only the simplest rudi-
ments of an education could have been given in a
country school in a thinly peopled agricidtural neigh-
borhood like that of Rockbridge County, and in a
pioneer settlement like that in East Tennessee the
opportunities must have been even less. Whatever
education Houston acquired in his early youth must
have been due to his active mind and fervid imagina-
tion, eagerly feeding upon what books came in his
way and possessing them with a fullness and reality
unknown to those whose minds are satiated and
dulled with an abundance and variety of reading.
Among the few books which had come to the frontier
settlement in the pack-saddles and in the corners of
chests among the homespun garments and household
implements, and which were read by the light of the
fat pine fire, was Pope's translation of the Iliad, and
this was devoured by the boy with all the fervid
appetite of vigorous youtliful imagination, until he
knew it nearly by heart. The artificiality of Pope's
style, which is an offense and an obstruction to the
refined literary taste that requires the purest flavor
for its fastidious palate, was no drawback in the eager
appetite of the boy to the appreciation of the reality
of the heroic figures and the fresh and immortal
drama "of human life behind it ; and the battles on
the windy plains of the Scamander, the camp-fires,
/•
^.
BOYHOOD AND YOUTH 5
the ships, and the walls of Troy were as visible and
real to him as the woods and fields of the Tennessee
valleys. Such a book was an education in itself in
all that relates to human life, in the elevation of the
spirit and the kindling of the imagination. Through-
out his life Houston was a man of few books. When
commander of the Texas army he deeply studied
Caesar's Commentaries for their simple and sagacious
lessons of war, which he assimilated with a native
intuition, as well as for the severe fascination of the
narrative. He read and appreciated Shakespeare and
had some familiarity with the standards of English
classical literature ; in his later years, after he became
" converted," he read the Bible thoroughly and con-
stantly, so that its phraseology tinged his oratory.
But his reading was always limited. His wisdom
and knowledge came from contact with men ; and his
literary gifts, his power of vigorous and impressive
writing on great subjects, and his persuasive and fig-
urative eloquence were due to native faculties, to the
power of his mind compelling appropriate words, and
the kindling force of his genius elevating and illumi-
nating common speech, and not to any training in the
arts of rhetoric or the study of masters of language
and expression.
It was during his early residence in East Tennessee
that occurred the first of his recorded escapades, that
breaking out of the wild blood, the longing for
adventure and the free life of the wilderness in the
companionship of its children, which characterized his
6 SAM HOUSTON
whole career and was a part of his nature. He had
been placed by his elder brothers as a clerk in a
trader's store, but his restless spirit revolted at the
tame life behind the counter and the drudgery of the
boxes and barrels, and one day he absconded across
the Tennessee River to take up his abode with the
Cherokees. He was received into their cabins as a
friend and a brother, whose natural tastes and in-
stincts were their own, and acquired that knowledge
of and sjanpathy with the Indian character which he
manifested through life. It is in a great measure an
instinct, a kindred element in the blood, the inheri-
tance of primitive nature, which enables men like
Houston and many other pioneer adventurers and
soldiers to be thoroughly at home in the Indian
camps, to share the emotions and thoughts of their
savage friends, and to govern and be trusted by them
through the community as well as the superiority of
their powers. The records of history and of travel are
full of the examples of men of civilized training and
scholarly culture who were never so much at home as
when in the company of the children of the desert
and the forest, whose simple natures they appreciated,
and whose wild and free life had an irresistible touch
of sympathy with their own instincts ; and the rule of
inveterate hostility and antagonism between the white
settlers of America and the aborigines has often been
broken by cases of natural attraction and the adop-
tion of savage life and companionship by the mem-
bers of the civilized race. Houston had many of
BOYHOOD AND YOUTH 7
the characteristics of the Indian in his nature : his hot
blood, his strong passions and appetites, his fondness
for adventure and the untrammeled freedom of the
wilderness, liis solemnly childish vanity and turn for
histrionic effect; as well as the higher qualities of
the native chief, a commanding personal power and
impressiveness, a shrewdness like that of Ulysses in
managing men and affairs, an eloquence of original
power and impressiveness, a loftiness of spirit and the
dominant quality of determination and courage. All
these qualities were doubtless visible in the youth as
in the man, and Houston was made welcome to the
Cherokee villages and adopted into the family of one
of the sub -chiefs of the tribe. He thoroughly ac-
quired the Cherokee language, which is so difficult
that it is said never to have been learned by an adult,
wore the native dress, and was to all intents and
purposes an Indian. It is to be said that the Chero-
kees were among the most intelligent and civilized of
the North American Indians, lived in cabins instead
of wigwams, cultivated fields, and in some instances
at this time owned negro slaves, had a written lan-
guage of their own invention, and were not greatly
different in their habits and manners of life from
their pioneer neighbors. But they were Indians, and
the flavor of wildness was as distinct among them
as among the gypsies, and this was what attracted
Houston and made him at home among them. When
the place of his retreat was discovered he was visited
by his brothers, who endeavored to persuade him to
8 SAM HOUSTON
return home ; but he replied, with that touch of gran-
diloquence which always distinguished him, that he .
preferred measuring deer-tracks to measuring tape,
and that they might leave him in the woods. He
remained with the Cherokees until his eighteenth
year, occasionally returning to the white settlements
for the supplies wanted for himself and his friends.
At this time, finding himself in debt for the ammuni-
tion and trinkets which he had purchased, he resolved
to return to civilization, and wipe off the debt by
opening a country school. The standard of qualifica-
tion could not have been beyond the most rudimen-
tary elements, or, with all his courage and self-confi-
dence, Houston would not have attempted to fill
it. It is recorded through his reminiscences that he / ♦
raised the price of tuition from six to eight dollars
per annum, one third payable in corn at thirty-three
and one half cents per bushel, one third in cash,
and one third in variegated cotton goods, such as
made the teacher's hunting shirt. Houston's popu-
lar attributes were illustrated in the success of his
school, which soon included most of the children of
the neighborhood, and enabled him to pay off his
not very formidable debt.
A glimpse of Houston at this time was given by
himself in conversation with Colonel Peter Burke, an
old comrade of the Indian wars, who had emigrated to
Texas after the annexation. He met Houston, then
a senator of the United States, on the steamboat
going up the Buffalo Bayou from Galveston to the
BOYHOOD AND YOUTH 9
town of Houston. There was a warm greeting be-
tween the old comrades, and they sat long on the deck
exchanging reminiscences. Finally, the conversation
turned upon Houston's successful career, and Colonel
Burke said, "Now, Houston, you have been Com-
mander-in-chief of the Texan army, President of the
Kepublic, and Senator of the United States. In which
of these offices, or at what period in your career, have
you felt the greatest pride and satisfaction ? " " Well,
Burke," said Houston, " when a young man in Ten-
nessee I kept a country school, being then about
eighteen years of age, and a tall, straj)ping fellow. At
noon after the luncheon, which I and my pupils ate
together out of our baskets, I would go out into the
woods, and cut me a ' sour wood ' stick, trim it care-
fully in circular spirals, and thrust one half of it into
the fire, which would turn it blue, leaving the other
haK white. With this emblem of ornament and
authority in my hand, dressed in a hunting-shirt of \
flowered calico, a long queue down my back, and the ;
sense of authority over my pupils, I experienced a
higher feeling of dignity and self-satisfaction than
from any office or honor which I have since held."
After teaching for a time Houston attended a
session or two of the Academy at Maryville, which
completed all the education that he was ever to
receive from the schools.* The war between the
United States and Great Britain had broken out,
and the drum was beaten on the frontier for recruits.
In 1813 a recruiting party visited Maryville, and
10 SAM HOUSTON
Houston enlisted as a private soldier, being then in
his twentieth year. He replied to the remonstrances
of his friends at the supposed degradation of his en-
listment with his customary grandiloquence and self-
confidence, that he would sooner honor the ranks
than disgrace an appointment, and that they should
hear of him. According to his reminiscences in later
life his mother admonished him in the spirit and
almost in the language of a Roman matron of the
melodramatic stage, handing him his musket at the
cabin door, and saying, " There, my son, take this
musket, and never disgrace it ; for remember, I had
rather all my sons should fill one honorable grave
than that one of them should turn his back to save
his life. Go ; and remember, too, that while the door
of my cabin is open to brave men, it is eternally shut
to all cowards ! " These words show that Mrs. Hous-
ton was remarkably like her son in the use of inflated
language, or that he supplied what he considered the
proper expression to a more plain-spoken but vigor-
ous and spirited admonition.
\
CHAPTER II
• THE YOUNG SOLDIER
Haying taken the silver dollar from the head of
the drum, which was the recognized token of enlist-
ment in those days, and put on a uniform, Houston
was made a sergeant the same day, and marched with
his detachment to join the Thirty-ninth Regiment,
Tennessee Volunteers. He was stationed with his reg-
iment at various cantonments in Alabama and Ten-
nessee, and by his active zeal and devotion to duty
acquired the reputation of being the best drill officer
in the command. He was, however, not left long in
the ranks. His friends made application to Presi-
dent Madison for an appointment, and he received a
commission as ensign, which reached him while the
regiment was stationed atKnoxville.
It was the period of the Creek war. That powerful
tribe had been aroused by the eloquence of Tecumseh
and his brother, the Prophet, as well as by the sense
of the constant aggression of the whites, and the
knowledge that only a desperate struggle could save
them from being crowded out of their lands and
home. They broke out into a sudden attack upon
the white settlements, and perpetrated the massacre
at Fort Minis in Alabama, August 10, 1813. They
12 SAM HOUSTON
were defeated by the troops under General Jackson
and General Coffee at Talladega and Taluschatchee,
their country ravaged, and their villages burned. But
the spirit of the tribe was yet unbroken, and the war
smouldered and spluttered along the border in the
burning of cabins and raids upon the outlying settlers.
It was determined to put an end to it by a decisive
and exterminating campaign, and the volunteer troops
were again called out under Jackson and Coffee.
Houston's regiment joined this army, and marched to
the scene of hostilities. The fighting remnant of the
tribe had rallied for a last stand at To-ho-pe-ka, or the
Horseshoe, a bend on the Tallaj)oosa River in Ala-
bama, which they had fortified by breastworks across
the neck of the peninsula. Here were gathered some
seven hundred warriors, the flower of the fighting men
of the nation, and three hundred women and phildren.
At this place Jackson's army, numbering about two
thousand men, arrived on the 27th of August, 1814.
The battle of To-ho-pe-k^ was one of the most
hotly contested and desperate which has ever been
fought by the Indian race against civilized arms and
discipline. The Indians had been wrought up to a
high pitch of enthusiasm and desperation by the fer-
vent appeals and predictions of their prophets and
chiefs, and the natural strength of their position gave
them additional confidence. The inclosure, about a
hundred acres in extent, was trenched with ravines,
and thickly wooded with trees and bush. Across the
opening, which was about three hundred and fifty
THE YOUNG SOLDIER 13
yards in width, was built a breastwork of three rows
of heavy pine logs, set upright in the ground, and
arranged with some military skill in zigzags for a rak-
ing as well as a front fire. The rest of the peninsula
was protected by the steep banks of the unfordable
river.
Jackson drew up his main body in a line fronting
the breastworks, and the battle was begun at half
past ten o'clock in the forenoon by the fire of his
small cannon, a four and a six pounder, which had
been planted on an eminence about eighty yards from
the breastworks. These balls had no effect on the solid
pine logs, and were saluted with whoops of derision
by the Indians, as they replied through the port-holes
to the rifle fire of the besiegers. In the mean time
General Coffee with the mounted troops and the
bands of Cherokees who had joined the whites
against their neighbors, the Creeks, had invested the
peninsula on the opposite side of the river. Some of
the Cherokees swam across the stream, and brought
away the canoes, which the Creeks had hidden under
the bushes of the bank. By these canoes General
Coffee's troops were taken across, and the crack of
their rifles and the smoke from the burning cabins
at the head of the peninsula announced to Jackson's
army that the Creeks had been taken in the rear. It
was then half past twelve. The long roll was beaten
and the order given to charge the breastworks. The
onset was made with all the vigor and fury of the
fiery frontiersmen.
14 SA3I HOUSTON
Houston at the extreme right of his regiment
dashed forward in front of the line as it charged upon
the breastworks, which were spitting fire at every
crevice. With a spring and a scramble he gained the
top of the palisade from which Major Montgomery of
his regiment had just fallen dead with a rifle ball in
his head. As he did so a barbed arrow struck deep
in his thigh. He sprang down, and at the head of
the rush of men who had followed drove the Indians
back from the palisade to take refuge among the trees
and brush. As the space was cleared and the battle
paused for a moment Houston called upon the lieu-
tenant of the company to pull out the arrow. Twice
he made the attempt and failed, it was so deeply
embedded in the flesh. Drawing back his sword over
his head Houston roared to him to try again, and that
he would cut him down if he failed. This time,
exerting all his strength, the lieutenant pulled out the
arrow, leaving a gaping and jagged wound from which
the blood gushed in a stream. Houston recrossed the
breastworks to have it stanched. While under the
surgeon's hands he was seen by Jackson, who was
watching the fight on horseback. Jackson ordered
him to the rear. Houston made light of his wound,
and begged to be allowed to rejoin the fight, but was
peremptorily refused. He disobeyed after Jackson
had moved off, recrossed the breastworks, and again
engaged in the conflict. It was fought with all the
fury of savage desperation. The Indians, driven from
the palisade, took refuge in the ravines and behind
THE YOUNG SOLDIER 15
the trees and bushes. From these they fired, and
were shot by the quick rifles of the frontiersmen, or
killed in hand-to-hand conflicts in which clubbed rifle
crashed against clubbed rifle, and hunting-knife struck
against tomahawk. Not a warrior asked for or re-
ceived quarter. The fight raged over the hundred-
acre space all the afternoon, until the larger number
of the Indians had been killed in their tracks, or shot
while endeavoring to swim the turbid waters of the
river.
A small band of the warriors bad, meanwhile, taken
refuge in a deep ravine close to the river on one side
of the breastworks. It was roofed with lieavy pine
logs, and almost as impregnable to assault as a cave.
The only way in which it could be taken was by a
direct charge upon the narrow entrance. An inter-
preter was sent forward to summon them to surrender,
but they replied with a shot, which wounded him, and
with yells of rage and defiance. Jackson called for
volunteers to storm the ravine, but the task was* so
evidently desperate that no body of men gathered to
respond to the call. Houston dashed forward, calling
upon his men to follow him, but without looking back
to see if they did so. When within a few yards of
the entrance he received two bullets in his shoulder,
and his upper right arm was shattered. His musket
fell from his hand, and he was helpless. No one had
supported his charge, and he drew back out of the
range of the fire. It was not until the logs covering
the ravine had been set on fire by blazing arrows, and
16 S am' HOUSTON
the desperate warriors had been shot as they burst
out of the smoke and flame, that the last refuge
crumbled in ashes and blood. It was sunset when
the battle was over, and the last hope of the Creek
nation was crushed. In his report of the battle to
his superior officer. General Pinckney, Jackson does
not mention the exploit of Houston's, although it
took place under his eye, but his name is contained
in the list of the wounded of his regiment afterward
forwarded to Governor Blount of Tennessee. It, how-
ever, gained for Houston Jackson's friendship and
confidence, which he retained throughout his life.
Houston was borne from the field and put in charge
of the surgeons. They considered his wounds neces-
sarily fatal, although it does not appear why they
should, unless they believed his lungs to be touched.
They extracted one bullet, but made no attempt to
probe for the other in an unnecessary torture. He
lay all night on the damp ground, receiving none of
the attention which was given to those whose wounds
were not considered mortal. In the morning he was
found to be alive, placed on a rude litter, and conveyed
to Fort Williams, some sixty or seventy miles distant.
Here he received only some rude surgery, the regu-
lar hospital for the wounded officers being at a place
called the Hickory Ground. He was kindly cared
for, however, a part of the time by Colonel Johnson
and a part of the time by Colonel Cheatham, two
volunteer officers from his State. At length he
was removed to the Ten Islands, where there was a
THE YOUNG SOLDIER 17
military post and hospital. General Dougherty, who
commanded the East Tennessee brigade, had him
conveyed by horse litter several hundred miles through
the Cherokee country to his mother's cabin. The
journey was intensely painful from the rough method
of conveyance, and he could only be supplied with the
coarsest food. It was nearly two months after the
battle of To-ho-pe-ka when he reached his mother's
house. He was emaciated to a skeleton by his wounds
and privations, and so changed that his mother said
that she would not have recognized him, except for
his eyes.
He did not recover at home under his mother's care,
nor at Marysville, where he was taken for medical
treatment. Finally he was removed to Knoxville,
which he reached in so low a condition of vitality
that the doctor said that he could live but a few days,
and declined to take charge of his case. Finding at
the end of that time that Houston was not only not
dead, but actually somewhat better, he consented to
treat him. He slowly recovered strength, and after a
time was able to make the journey on horseback to
Washington, which he reached shortly after the burn-
ing of the Capitol in the raid of the British troops.
Being still unfit for active duty, he returned to Lex-
ington, Ya., where he spent a portion of the winter
with his relatives and friends. He continued to gain
in strength, and returned to Knoxville, where he re-
ceived the news of the battle of New Orleans, and was
placed on duty at the cantonment of his regiment.
18 SAM HOUSTON
On the reduction of the army after the declaration of
peace, Houston was assigned to the First Regiment of
infantry in the regular army, having received his
promotion to a lieutenancy for his gallantry at To-ho-
pe-ka, and ordered to report for duty at New Orleans.
He made the journey down the Cumberland and
the Mississippi in a skiff with only two companions,
one of whom was E. D. White, afterward Governor
of Louisiana. He has recorded that while voyaging
down the vast and lonely stream of the Mississippi
they saw, on turning a bend, a vessel pouring out a
stream of smoke, which they supposed to be on fire ;
but it proved to be the first steamboat which had
navigated its waters. They left their skiff at Natchez
and took the steamer, which conveyed them to New
Orleans. In New Orleans, Houston's wounds were
again operated upon, and, in his weakened condition,
the operation nearly cost him his life. After shatter-
ing his right arm at nearly the junction with his
shoulder, the bullet had passed around and lodged
under the shoulder-blade. The wound never entirely
healed, and constantly discharged until the day of his
death. After a winter of weakness and suffering in
New Orleans, he went to New York for medical treat-
ment, and then reported for duty at the Adjutant-
General's office in Nashville, where he was employed
until November, 1817. At that time he was appointed
a sub-agent of the Cherokees under General Return
J. Meigs, at the request of General Jackson, and
accepted the duty, although yet hardly fit for active
THE YOUNG SOLDIER 19
service. General Jackson wrote to Assistant Secre-
tary of War Graham, " He is a young man of
sonnd integrity, wlio has my entire confidence, and
in every way he is capacitated to fill the appointment.
Moreover he has some claims upon the government for
a severe wound received in the service, which may be ,
considered a disability." Jackson also wrote to Gen- /
eral Meigs, " In him I have full confidence, and in /
him you will have a friend clear of design and deceit,
on whom you can rely under all and every circum- I
stance, as capable to aid you in every respect." In the
previous year the chiefs of the Cherokees had signed
a treaty by which they agreed to surrender 1,385,200
acres of their best land in East Tennessee. A portion
of the tribe were naturally indignant, and refused to
remove from their homes. There were apprehensions
of serious trouble when Houston was appointed, and
his knowledge of the Cherokee language and ac-
quaintance and friendship in the tribe doubtless made
his influence very useful in subduing the hostility
and ill-feeling. He received the thanks of Governor
McMunn, who had succeeded General Meigs as agent,
for the efficiency of his services.
He conducted a delegation of the Cherokees to
"Washington to receive the funds for 'the sale of their
lands and fix the bounds of their reservation, and
while there had trouble with John C. Calhoun, then
Secretary of War, which resulted in the termination
of his service in the army, and doubtless intensified
the antagonism to that wing of the Democratic party
represented by Calhoun, which he manifested in later
20 SAM HOUSTON
life. His first offense was in appearing before tlie
punctilious Secretary dressed in the garments of an
Indian, whicli lie habitually assumed when living with
them. He received a rebuke for this which he did
not relish. But a more serious charge followed. The
Indian country was full of outlaws and desperate ad-
venturers, who were engaged in all sorts of schemes of
plunder and offense against the laws. One of these
was the smuggling of slaves from Florida, then a
province of Spain, who were taken through the Indian
reservation to the border settlements. Houston inter-
fered to break up this nefarious traffic, and naturally
excited the enmity of those engaged in it. Some of
them or their agents in Washington made charges
against Houston affecting his official integrity and
personal conduct. He appeared before President
Madison and Secretary Calhoun, and successfully de-
fended himself, and having concluded his agency
business in Washington, conducted the Cherokee dele-
gation back to the Hilli-bee towns. But his hasty
temper had taken umbrage at the unwarranted attacks
upon him, and the spirit in which the inquiry into
his conduct had been instituted by the Secretary of
War, and he resigned. May 18, 1818. He was then
a first lieutenant,' and had served for &ve years.
Houston's service in the army of the United States
was useful and creditable, although he did not rise
above a subordinate, or take part in any important
military operation. He earned the respect and com-
mendation of his superior officers, and was noted for
his zeal and capacity as a soldier. It was Houston's
THE YOUNG SOLDIER 21
bravery under Ms own eyes whicli attracted the friend-
ship and confidence of Jackson, which he retained
through all the vicissitudes of his career. On the other
hand Houston conceived a respect and admiration for
Jackson, which made him a devoted follower, person-
ally and politically, and the only person, it was said, to
whose judgment he deferred, and who could influence
his actions. In many respects alike in passion and
temperament, and both characteristic products of the
untamed and vigorous life of the frontier, they had
essential elements of difference in habits and charac-
ter, and the stronger, more self-contained and sterner
nature of Jackson dominated the more impassioned
and enthusiastic temperament of Houston.
Senator Benton in his speech in the Senate, May
16, 1836, in favor of acknowledging the indepen-
dence of Texas as a consequence of the battle of San
Jacinto, bore testimony, in his somewhat higliflown
and stilted way, to the good qualities of Houston as
a young soldier. He said, " Houston was appointed
an ensign in the army of the United States during
the late war with Great Britain, and served in the
Creek campaign under the banner of Jackson. I was
the lieutenant-colonel of the regiment to which he be-
longed, and the first field-officer to whom he reported.
I then marked in him the same soldierly and gentle-
manly qualities, which have since distinguished his
eventful career ; frank, generous and brave, ready to
do or to suffer whatever the obligations of civil or mili-
tary duty imposed ; and always prompt to answer the
call of honor, patriotism or friendship."
CHAPTER III
MEMBER OF CONGRESS AND GOVERNOR OF TENNESSEE
After leaving the army Houston determined to
become a lawyer, which in those days in the South-
west was synonymous with politician. For this career
he doubtless felt his remarkable fitness and vocation
as a popular orator and manager of men. He had
contracted some debts while in the service, on account
of extra expenses caused by his wounds, and he sold
his only piece of property, some land, to pay them ;
it failed to do so entirely, and he began his new
life some hundreds of dollars in debt. He entered
the law office of Hon. James Trimble in Nashville,
and was admitted to the bar after six months' study.
It may be supposed that the examination was not very
strict, and the requirements of technical knowledge
not very exhaustive. Andrew Jackson had been made
a district attorney without knowing how to spell, and
a knowledge of the intricacies of the law and the pre-
cedents of the courts was of much less consequence
for a successful practitioner than a flow of popular
oratory for the jury, and a courage to hold one's own
with the fighting attorneys, who occasionally supple-
mented the heated debate in the court room by a per-
sonal encounter outside. At any rate Houston never
MEMBER OF CONGRESS 23
was and never pretended to be a lawyer in the pro-
fessional sense of the term. He was the political
attorney in Tennessee, using the opportunities of the
court room to show his powers of rough and ready
eloquence, and to obtain professional and political
office ; and in Texas, during the rare intervals when
he was not holding some public position, he some-
times went on circuit and made effective stimip
speeches to juries in criminal cases. But he never
studied and never knew anything of the law beyond
those general principles which are readily appreciated
by a strong and capacious mind, and the easy and
slipshod requirements of frontier practice. In this
he was probably not inferior to most of his associates,
and was able to hold his own with credit and success
among the attorneys who traveled the circuits of Ten-
nessee, with their libraries in their saddle-bags and a
ready tongue and pistol as their chief requirements
for successful practice.
After being admitted to the bar Houston settled in
Lebanon, Tennessee, bought his books on credit, and
hired an office at a dollar a month. He was received
with much kindness by Isaac GoUaday, a merchant
and postmaster of Lebanon, who sold him a suit of
clothes, let him have his letters on credit, and in-
troduced him to his friends. One of the pleasant
glimpses of Houston's personal life is given in a letter
of a son of Isaac GoUaday, to whom Houston mani-
fested his gratitude for his father's kindness, while
sick and a stranger in Texas : —
24 SAM HOUSTON
" I was traveling in Texas in 1853. Arrived at
tlie town of Huntsville, Walker County, on Sunday
at about eleven o'clock. The good people of the town
and the vicinity were passing on to the church as I
rode up to the hotel. I was very sick ; had a high
fever on me when I dismounted. I told the landlord
I was very sick and wanted a room ; he assigned me
a room and was very kind in his attentions. I took a
bed immediately, and while talking to him asked him
in what part of the State General Houston lived. He
re^jlied, ' He lives about one and a half miles from
town, and his family and he have just passed, going
to church in their carriage.' To this I said, ' Please
keep on the lookout, and when he returns from
church let him know that a Golladay of Tennessee is
lying sick here I ' After the church hour was over,
say twelve or one o'clock, a large, portly, elegant-
looking man came walking into my room and to my
bedside. I knew from the description which I had
had of him that it was General Houston, although I
had never seen him. I called him by name. He
asked me if I was the son of his old friend, Isaac
Golladay, of Lebanon, Tennessee. I replied I was.
He then asked me which one. I told him I was
Frederick. He said he knew my elder brothers, but
he had left Lebanon before I was born, but added,
' If you are the son of Isaac Golladay I recognize you
as the child of an old and true friend. I went to
Lebanon, where your father resided, a poor young
man ; your father furnished me an office for the prac-
MEMBER OF CONGRESS 25
tice of law ; credited me in Ms store for clothes ; let
me have the letters, which then cost twenty-five cents
postage, from the office of which he was postmaster ;
invited me to his house, and recommended me to all
the good j)eople of his large general acquaintance.'
He then said, ' You must go out to my house. I will
come in my carriage for you in the evening.' I re-
plied with thanks that I was too sick to go, but he
insisted on coming for me the next morning, to which
I consented. Early the next morning he came for
me ; being better, I went out to his house with him.
He placed me in a room in his yard, saying that Mrs.
H. was confined to her room with an infant at that
time. My fever rose and kept me confined. He sent
for a physician. I was sick there for about ten days
or two weeks. He made a servant-man stay and sleep
in the office with me, to wait on me all the while, but
would often come and see me, and spend much of his
time with me. One night, especially, while I was
sick, the doctor had left orders for my medicine to be
given me during the night, and my feet bathed with
warm water. He stayed all night with me. He had
the vessel of warm water brought, pulled oif his coat,
rolled up his sleeves, to wash my feet. I objected,
the servant being present. He replied, ' My Master
washed His disciples' feet, and I would follow His
glorious example,' and insisted that he should do so.
During the time which he spent with me in my sick
room, he gave me much of his early history."
Houston soon began to be a figure in public life*
26 SAM HOUSTON
His remarkable gifts for popularity, the impressive-
ness and friendliness of his manners, his natural
powers of adaptability to all societies, which made him
as much at home while telling stories on a store-box
or a wagon tongue as in a parlor, and his cultivated
dignity of port and gesture gave him the essentials
of political success. He was, besides, the friend and
devoted follower of Andrew Jackson, who exercised a
sort of political kingship in Tennessee in those days.
While practicing law in Lebanon he was, in 1819,
appointed Adjutant-General of the State with the
rank of colonel, and in October of the same year
he was elected prosecuting attorney for the Davidson
District, which necessitated his removal to Nashville.
After his curious egotistical and sentimental fashion
he addressed a farewell to the citizens of Lebanon
from the court-house steps, in which he said, " I was
naked and ye clothed me ; I was hungry and ye fed
me ; I was athirst and ye gave me drink," and moved
the hearts of his hearers to such a degree that, accord-
ing to the contemporary account, " there was not a
dry eye in the whole assembly." Houston performed
his duties as prosecuting attorney with success and
eclat, but resigned the office on account of the in-
sufficiency of the fees. He continued the practice
of law in Nashville, and in 1821 was elected major-
general of the Tennessee militia, a wholly political
and mainly' honorary office.
In 1823, when thirty years of age, Houston was
elected a Kepresentative to Congress from the ninth
MEMBER OF CONGRESS 27
district of Tennessee under the new apportionment.
Houston served in Congress for four years without
special distinction, occasionally taking part in the de-
bates, and acting as a member of the Jackson wing
of the Democratic party. Jackson had been elected
a Senator by the Tennessee legislature shortly after
Houston's election as Eepresentative, and both were
members of the Committee on Military Affairs.
Houston in common with the other Jacksonian mem-
bers opposed the resolution offered by Henry Clay,
then Speaker of the House, for an inquiry into his
political conduct, made personal by the charges of
George Kremer, a Representative from Pennsylvania,
in the newspapers, of a corrupt bargain by which
John Quincy Adams was to be elected President and
Clay made Secretary of State. Houston issued an
address to his constituents giving as reasons for this
opposition that it would be simply a political investi-
gation and that the proper remedy for the personal
grievance would be found in the courts. The main
purpose of the circular, however, was to intensify the
populai? indignation at the defeat of Jackson, who had
obtained a plurality of the electoral votes, and to
strengthen the feeling which carried Jackson into the
presidential chair at the next election by an over-
whelming majority. Houston's address was written in
that forcible and dignified language, which he always
had at his command when dealing with questions of
state, and indicated that he had received a valuable
education in the comprehension and treatment of pub-
28 SAM HOUSTON
lie affairs by liis experience in the halls of Congress.
Congress at that time contained a number of notable
men, including Daniel Webster, Henry Clay, John
Randolph, the veteran of the House, the venerable
Nathaniel Macon, and others, and the debates and the
consideration of public affairs were on a plane which
could not but have afforded a man of Houston's
quickness of mind and enlarging capacity very impor-
tant lessons of comprehension and dignity. Houston's
eccentricities were generally kept for an appropriate
audience, and there is no reason to doubt that as a
Representative in Congress he conducted himself as a
sober-minded and practical legislator, if he did not
distinguish himself beyond the lines of a political fol-
lower of Andrew Jackson, or make a special mark
as a debater.
It was during Houston's second term as a member
of Congress that his first and only serious duel took
place. The appointments of postmasters under the
new Federal Administration were naturally not of
the Jackson-Houston party. One Colonel Irwin had
been appointed postmaster at Nashville, and Houston
had expressed his opinion about him with that vigor
which always characterized his animadversions upon
his political opponents. Houston's words were car-
ried to Colonel Irwin, and it was understood that
he would hold him personally responsible for them
on his return to Tennessee. Colonel Irwin selected
as the bearer of his challenge one Colonel John
T. Smith, a noted desperado of Missouri ; Houston's
MEMBER OF CONGRESS 29
friend, Colonel McGregor, refused to accept the
challenge from Smith's hands. The challenge was
offered and refused in front of the Nashville Inn,
McGregor dropping the paper to the ground as it
was handed to him. No encounter followed between
Smith and McGregor, as was expected, and the news
of the action was taken to Houston, who was in a
room of the inn with some of his friends. General
William White, who was present, expressed himself
to the effect that Smith had not been treated with
proper courtesy. Houston overheard the remark, and
said to White, " If you, sir, have any grievance, I
will give you any satisfaction you may demand."
White replied, " I have nothing to do with your diffi-
culty, but I presume you know what is due from one
gentleman to another." Nothing farther followed at
the time, and it was soon spread about the streets of
Nashville that Houston had " backed down " General
White. This attack upon his courage reached the
ears of General White, and he sent a challenge to
Houston, which was promptly accepted. An attempt
was made by the sheriff to arrest them both for the
preservation of the peace, but Houston escaped to the
house of a friend in an adjoining county, and sent
word to White, who had also evaded arrest, that he
was ready to meet him across the state line in Ken-
tucky. The duel was fought at sunrise, September
23, 1826, at a noted dueling - ground in Simpson
County known by the name of Linkumpinch, just
across the Tennessee line, and on the road from Nash-
30 SAM HOUSTON
ville to Bowling Green. White was severely, and it
was supposed at first mortally, wounded, having been
shot through the body at the hip. Houston escaped
untouched. As they took their places to fire Houston
was observed to slij) something into his mouth w^hich
he afterward explained was a bullet, which he had
placed between his teeth on the advice of Jackson,
who said that it was good to have something in the
mouth to bite on, — " It will make you aim better."
On the evening of the day of the fight a large
crowd was gathered at the Nashville Inn to hear the
news, and among them General Jackson. Presently
one John G. Anderson, " a noted character " and a
friend of Houston's, who had witnessed the duel,
came dashing over the bridge on horseback with the
news that Houston was unharmed and White mor-
tally wounded. The grand jury of Simpson County
in June, 1827, brought in an indictment against
Houston for felony in shooting at William White
with intent to kill, and the Governor of Kentucky
issued a requisition on the Governor of Tennessee
for his surrender. It was not complied with on the
ground that the facts showed that Houston had
" acted in self-defefise." In fact a prosecution for
such an offense in those dueling days must have
been understood as a farce, and the fight undoubt-
edly increased Houston's popularity as an evidence of
his "game."
Houston's bitter and abusive tongue frequently got
him into personal difficulties in which the " satisfac-
MEMBER OF CONGRESS 31
tion of a gentleman " was demanded by his antago-
nists ; but be never fought again, while sober, and was
equally ready with a lofty assumption of dignity or a
joke to avoid the necessity. To a challenge from a
political inferior in Texas he rej)lied that he " never
fought down hill." On another occasion, when called
to account by a gentleman whom he had been de-
nouncing, he said, " Why, H., I thought you were a
friend of mine." " So I was, but I do not propose to
be abused by you or anybody else." " Well, I should
like to know," said Houston, " if a man can't abuse
his friends, who in h — he can abuse," and the affair
ended in a laugh. Mr. John J. Linn in his " Remi-
niscences of Fifty Years in Texas " tells the story
that Houston and ex-President Burnet had an acri-
monious newspaper controversy in which they bandied
abusive epithets until finally Houston accused Burnet
of being a " hog-thief." There was no retort in Texan
phraseology capable of over-matching this, and Burnet
sent a challenge to Houston by Dr. Branch T. Archer.
" What does he predicate the demand upon ? " said
Houston in his loftiest manner. Archer replied that
it was for his abuse of Mr. Burnet. " Has n't he
abused me to an equal degree ? He has done so pub-
licly and privately until I am compelled to believe
that the people are equally disgusted with both of us."
Houston's dignity of manner overpowered Archer,
and he took back the challenge. Houston received
challenges from President Lamar, General Albert
Sidney Johnston and Commodore E. W. Moore of
32 SAM HOUSTON
the Texas navy, and a good many others, whicli lie
did not accept. On one occasion being visited by a
gentleman with a warlike message, he took the chal-
lenge and handed it to his private secretary with in-
structions to indorse it " number fourteen," and file
it away. He then informed the expectant gentleman
that his affair must wait its turn until the previous
thirteen had been disposed of. It is perhaps a won-
der that he preserved his reputation for courage in
such a community as that of Texas, while persist-
ently declining to fight, but it does not seem to have
been seriously doubted. In a speech to his constitu-
ents at Tellico, after his duel with White, Houston
said that he was opposed to dueling, but had been
compelled to fight in defense of his honor. " Thank
God," he said, " that my antagonist was injured no
worse." There is no record of how his affair with
the Nashville postmaster terminated, but it certainly
led to no more fighting.
This same year, 1827, Houston was elected gov-
ernor of Tennessee by a majority of 12,000 over New-
ton Cannon, and Willie Blount, the old " war gover-
nor." Houston doubtless owed much to his personal
popularity, but his nomination and election were due
to the fact that he was the representative of the per-
sonal party of Andrew Jackson, which his compet-
itors opposed. Of his appearance at the time of his
election there is a vivid and minute portrait in the
reminiscences of Colonel D. D. Claiborne of Goliad,
Texas, who saw him with the eager and impression-
GOVERNOR OF TENNESSEE 33
able eyes of a boy. It shows Houston in that theatri-
cal and sensational manner of dress which was a
characteristic of him as long as he lived, and which
only his magnificent physique and lofty manner could
have prevented from seeming ridiculous and puerile.
Says Colonel Claiborne : —
" He wore on that day (August 2, 1827) a tall,
bell-crowned, medium-brimmed, shining black beaver
hat, shining black patent-leather military stock or
cravat, incased by a standing collar, ruffled shirt,
black satin vest, shining black silk pants gathered
to the waistband with legs full, same size from seat
to ankle, and a gorgeous, red-ground, many-colored
gown or Indian hunting-shirt, fastened at the waist by
a huge red sash covered with fancy bead-work, with
an immense silver buckle, embroidered silk stockings,
and pumps with large silver buckles. Mounted on a
superb dapple-gray horse he appeared at the election
unannounced, and was the observed of all observers."
But however bizarre and fantastic was Houston's
appearance on election day, his practical good sense
and statesmanship were manifested in the office ; and
his executive administration was successful, and his
legislative recommendations conservative.
Houston was a candidate for reelection for a second
term against the formidable opposition of General
William Carroll, who had commanded the left wing
of Jackson's army at New Orleans, and had been
Governor of Tennessee for three terms previous to
Houston's election ; he was ineligible for the fourth
34 SAM HOUSTON
term in succession owing to the prohibitive provision
of the State Constitution. The canvass was proceed-
ing, apparently in Houston's favor, when the event
occurred which put an end to his successful career as
a politician in Tennessee, and apparently ruined him
forever. On the 16th of April, 1829, he sent in his
resignation to the Secretary of State. In January of
that year Houston had been married to a Miss Eliza
Allen, daughter of a wealthy and influential family of
Sumner County, which was numbered among his polit-
ical friends and adherents. After three months of
marriage his wife left him and returned to her father's
house. Houston wrote to her father, asking him to
persuade his wife to return, but she refused, and he
threw up his hold on fortune and life. The cause of
the trouble between Houston and his wife has never
been definitely revealed. The only words which he
ever wrote on the matter were contained in a letter
in which he said : " Eliza stands acquitted by me.
I have received her as a virtuous, chaste wife, and as
such I pray God I may ever regard her, and I trust I
ever shall. She was cold to me, and I thought did
not love me." The most probable explanation is that
the young lady had been induced to marry Houston to
gratify the desires of her parents, who were attracted
by his brilliant political position and prospects, while
her affections had been given to another. The inti-
macy of married life revealed her coldness or repug-
nance to her husband, and in a moment of quarrel
she avowed the truth, and left him. Houston's " high-
GOVERNOR OF TENNESSEE 35
strung " spirit and personal vanity were deeply
wounded, and he acted with all the dramatic inten-
sity of his nature.
There was the wildest excitement in the frontier
community over such an explosion of scandal.
Houston's enemies circulated the most outrageous
reports concerning his conduct, and the mystery, as
it generally is, was interpreted at its worst. For a
time there was the prospect that he would be sub-
ject to personal violence and that there would be
bloody affrays in the streets of Nashville over the
affair. His friends rallied around him, but he left
Nashville in secret, some say in disguise, and went to
bury himself among his old friends, the Cherokees,
a portion of whom had removed from their homes in
Tennessee to the Indian Territory.
Nothing could ever be extracted from Houston as
to the cause of the separation between himself and
his mfe, even when he had lost his self-control from
drink, and whenever he spoke of her it was in the
most respectful terms. Sometimes he took the in-
quiries good-humoredly, as when he replied to Hon.
J. H. Reagan, afterward Postmaster-General of the
Confederacy and United States Senator, who, while
traveling with him in Texas on the way to a con-
ference with the Indians at Grapevine Springs, had
called his attention to a long, pretended account of
the affair in a newspaper. Houston merely said,
" There has been a great deal written on that subject
by men who know nothing about it. It is an absolute
36 SAM HOUSTON
secret and will always remain so." At other times
he resented an inquiry as an unwarranted obtrusion
into his private affairs. During his early residence
in Texas, and when he. had no home of his own,
Houston spent a good deal of his time at the house
of Colonel Phil Sublett at San Augustine. One
night he came home so intoxicated that he was un-
able to mount to his chamber, and was accommodated
with a pallet on the floor. Colonel Sublett thought
this a good ojDportunity to obtain a knowledge of
the mystery, and began to question him on the sub-
ject. This sobered as well as angered Houston, and
he called for his horse, declaring that he would not
remain longer in a house where an attempt was
made to take advantage of his condition to extract
his secret, and he was with difficulty pacified by an
apology.
Mrs. Houston secured a divorce from Houston on
the ground of abandonment, and afterward married
a Dr. Douglass. She lived for many years in the
town of Gallatin, Tennessee, and enjoyed the entire
respect and esteem of the community. She was
equally silent as to the cause of the separation of
herself and her first husband.
CHAPTER IV
INDIAN LIFE — THE STANBERRY AFFAIR
Houston went by steamboat to tbe mouth of the
Arkansas, not being recognized on the way except at
Napoleon, where he was seen by a friend from whom
he exacted a promise not to betray his identity ; from
thence he traveled by way of Little Rock, where he
addressed a farewell letter to General Jackson, to
the mouth of the Illinois Bayou, which flows into
the Arkansas about thirty miles below Fort Gibson.
Here was a settlement of the Cherokees, who had pre-
ceded the forced emigration of the tribe in 1838, and
settled in Arkansas and the Indian Territory. A
treaty had been made on their behalf with the Osages
in order to secure them a location, and, after some
quarrels and skirmishes with that tribe, they had set-
tled into permanent and peaceful residence.
At the mouth of the Illinois was Tah-lon-tees-kee,
the principal town and council house of the tribe,
and the residence of Oo-loo-tee-kah, or, as he was
better known by his English name, John Jolly, the
sub-chief, who had received Houston into his family
when a boy in Tennessee, and had now become the
principal chief of the western fragment of the tribe.
He gave a hearty welcome to his adopted son in his
38 SAM HOUSTON
second flight for refuge among the tribe, and Houston
took up his residence with him, resuming his Indian
name of Co-lon-neh, or the Raven, and the dress and
habits of the savage. The chief, John Jolly, is de-
scribed as a man of great intelligence and force of
character, and was at that time about sixty years of
age, of massive frame, although not tall, with a rotund
but commanding countenance, and his long locks
plentifully sprinkled with gray. He spoke no English,
and had none of the civilized education which some
of the members of the tribe at that time possessed.
His cabin was under a magnificent grove of cotton-
woods and sycamores at the confluence of the streams,
and he cultivated a clearing and kept a large herd of
cattle, his wealth also comprising twelve negro slaves,
whom he had brought with him from Tennessee. He
lived in the patriarchal Indian fashion, and he and
Houston have been seen seated on the floor together,
feeding with their spoons from the trough of ka-nau-
hee-na, or hominy boiled to the consistency of paste,
which was always kept replenished in the centre of
the cabin.
Houston lived with John Jolly for upward of a
year, was formally adopted as a member of the tribe,
and took part in its counsels and deliberations. At
this time the eastern Cherokees had adopted a sys-
tem of government with a constitution and laws after
the model of those of their white neighbors ; but the
western Cherokees still managed their affairs after the
aboriginal fashion. They had a principal chief and
INDIAN LIFE 39
sub-chiefs, wlio were the natural leaders in war and
council, but their authority was very limited, and the
actual government was by a republic in which the
tribe decided all matters of importance by discussion
and vote in a general council. The chief matters
decided at the sessions of the council, which were
held in an open shed, roofed with branches, were
the relations of the tribe with the United States, as
represented by its agents and contractors, and with
neighboring Indian tribes, propositions for grants of
land to missionary stations and schools, the mainte-
nance of formal intercourse with the eastern Chero-
kees, and such matters; and it also administered a
rude justice for murder and theft by the bullet and
the lash.
It is said that Houston did not take a very promi-
nent part in the deliberations of the council, and this
was probably due to that feeling of jealousy toward
the members of an alien race which would be nat-
ural among the native Indians. He preserved the
fondness for dress and display among the Indians
which he had shown among the whites. The Chero-
kees did not paint their faces and wear scalp-locks
like their neighbors, the Osages, but they wore the
blankets, buckskin hunting - shirts, leggings and
moccasins, and adorned their hair with the feathers
of the eagle and wild turkey. On state occasions
Houston appeared m all the glory of an Indian brave.
He has been described as wearing in full dress a white
hunting-shirt brilliantly embroidered, yellow leggings, \
40
SA.
STON
and moccasins elabort
red blanket, and a c
his head. He let his
queue which hung do
on his chin, shaving t. \e
are very quick to ridi
ners, and Houston's lu.
did not escape their
council meeting they
of his attire, and stati
he imitated his pose z
the assembly. Housi
tator with shrewd in
repeated.
Houston did not sii k
the public attention,
the forests of the In ,
and the dramatic mf:.;
public life, made his
jecture and rumor, {
the centre of all sortr
Among them was a
province of Mexico
and this took such
with some uneasinesf
structed a governme
to him on the subjei
alluding to it, which
confidence in his f ri
misfortunes. Jackso
pked with beads, a huge
turkey feathers around
>w, and wore it in a long
»ack, and wore his beard
rase V >f his face. The Indians
tricks of ways and man-
o•
132 SAM HOUSTON
supplies expected from New Orleans had not arrived
at Copano. Houston issued orders for the concen-
tration of the troops at Refugio, where beef at least
could be obtained, but had great difficulty in per-
suading the men to march on account of their discon-
tent at the failure of the government to provide them
with either food or clothing. A message was received
from Colonel Neill, in command at San Antonio, that
he expected to be attacked by a large force of the
enemy, and Houston dispatched Colonel Bowie to his
assistance. He ordered Colonel Neill to demolish
the fortifications of the Alamo, and bring off the
artillery. Colonel Neill replied that he had no teams
with which to move the guns, and the garrison re-
mained in the Alamo. Governor Smith sent Lieu-
tenant-Colonel Travis, who had been stationed on
recruiting service at San Felipe, with a small party
to reinforce the garrison. Colonel Neill returned to
his home, and Travis assumed the command. While
Houston was at Refugio endeavoring to bring some
order out of the confusion and disorganization, Colo-
nel Johnson arrived and exhibited the resolutions of
the Council empowering him to take command of the
expedition against Matamoras. Houston at the same
time was informed of the deposition of Governor
Smith. He considered that it would be useless to
attempt to accomplish anything in such a conflict of
authority, and that by remaining with the army he
would be simply held responsible for the failures
which would inevitably follow, without any power to
FAILURE OF OPERATIONS 138
prevent them. He addressed the vokmteers, dis-
couraging the expedition against Matamoras, and
returned to his headquarters at Washington, from
whence he forwarded a communication to Governor
Smith, giving an account of his proceedings, and
arguing strongly against the competency of the Coun-
cil to depose the Governor. While at Refugio he
had been elected by the citizens a delegate to the
Convention to be held March 1.
The proposed expedition to Matamoras came to
nothing. Johnson and Fannin were unable to agree
as to who should have the command, and the volun-
teers were so much discouraged by Houston's speech,
pointing out the folly and inevitable failure of the
expedition, that they refused to march. Johnson
was left with only sixty men, and abandoned his en-
terprise. Fannin remained with the volunteers from
the United States for the defense of Goliad, but at-
tempted no active operations. Grant and his men
occupied themselves with raids for the stealing of
horses.
The commissioners to solicit aid in the United
States met with a good deal of success. Austin made
addresses in some of the principal cities, and the
moderation as well as earnestness of their tone had
a good effect upon the conservative opinion of the
country, and relieved the revolt of the Texans from
the imputation of being a filibuster enterprise. Sub-
scriptions of money and arms were given to some ex-
tent, and there was a warm feeling of sympathy for
134 SAM HOUSTON
the success of the colonists in the struggle. The
commissioners succeeded in negotiating a loan of
8200,000 in New Orleans, Austin pledging his pri-
vate fortune as security. Of this they obtained
820,000 in cash, and later they effected a loan of
850,000 in cash. With these funds they purchased
supplies, which kept the army from entirely falling
to pieces.
"While Houston had virtually given up the com-
mand of the army, he was enabled to perform an im-
portant service for the success of the colonists in their
struggle. The Indians in eastern Texas, who in-
cluded the Cherokees and other fragments of tribes
driven from the United States, constituted a very
formidable body. They were jealous of the aggres-
sions of the colonists upon the lands, which had been
granted them by the Mexican government, and were
on friendly terms with the Mexican agents stationed
among them. It was highly important that they
should be conciliated and rendered passive, if not
actively friendly, to the colonists. On November 13,
the Consultation adopted a "Solemn Declaration" in
regard to the rights of these Indians, to which each
member subscribed his name. The declaration is in
the handwriting of Houston, and was undoubtedly
adopted by his influence. It reads : —
"We solemnly declare that the boundaries of the
claims of the said Indians are as follows, to wit,
being north of the San Antonio road and the Neches,
and west of the Angelina and Sabine rivers. We
TREATY WITH INDIANS 135
solemnly declare that the Governor and General
Council immediately on its organization shall ap-
point commissioners to treat with the said Indians to
establish the definite boundaries of their territory,
and secure their confidence and friendship. We
solemnly declare that we will guarantee to them the
peaceable enjoyment of their rights and their lands
as we do our own. We solemnly declare that all
grants, surveys, and locations within the bounds here-
inbefore mentioned, made after the settlement of the
said Indians, are and of right ought to be utterly
null and void, and the commissioners issuing the same
be and are hereby ordered immediately to recall and
cancel the same, as having been made upon lands
already appropriated by the Mexican government.
We solemnly declare that it is our sincere desire that
the Cherokee Indians and their associate bands should
remain our friends in peace and war, and if they do
so we pledge the public faith to the support of the
foregoing declaration. We solemnly declare that
they are entitled to our commiseration and protection,
as the first owners of the soil, as an unfortunate race
of people, that we wish to hold as friends and treat
with justice."
Samuel Houston, John Forbes, and John Cameron
were , ointed commissioners to treat with the In-
dian 'JM this basis.
Aitc Houston's return to Washington he was
gi^ a furlough by Governor Smith until March 1,
ai lirected to carry out his instructions as one
136 SAM HOUSTON
of the commissioners -to treat with the Indians.
Houston and Forbes visited the Indians, and held a
grand council of the tribes at the village of Bowles,
the chief of the Cherokees, where a treaty was con-
cluded February 23, on the basis of the "Solemn
Declaration." This kept the Indians quiet during
the struggle, and it is perhaps needless to say that
the treaty was repudiated by the Texan Congress
after it was over.
CHAPTER IX
FALL OF THE ALAMO — CREATION OF THE
REPUBLIC
While the government and military organization
of Texas had fallen into a condition of confusion
and anarchy, Santa Anna had been consolidating the
power in Mexico. The new Constitution abolished
the state legislatures, and preserved only the forms
of a federal government in a department council
and governors of provinces appointed by the Presi-
dent. The President was the supreme authority and
absolute dictator in all but the name. The republi-
can party was completely cowed, and the majority of
the people of Mexico accepted the destruction of their
liberties without a murmur, and even apparently with
approval. Having completed this work, Santa Anna
turned his attention to the subjugation of Texas,
where alone his authority was resisted. He com-
menced the concentration of troops at San Luis
Potosi early in December, and dispatched the first
brigade under the command of General Sesma for
the relief of General Cos, then besieged in San An-
tonio. Cos's retreating forces were met at the Eio
Grande, and Sesma halted there to await the arrival
of the remainder of the army. The other two bri-
138 SAM HOUSTON
gades, with the cavalry and artillery, were concen-
trated at Saltillo, and Santa Anna took the command
in person. General Vincente Filisola, an Italian,
who had been for some time in the service of Mexico,
and was the empresario of a grant of land in Texas,
was appointed second in command. General Cas-
trillon commanded the artillery, and General Au-
drade the cavalry. Generals Tolsa and Gaona com-
manded the second and third brigades. The troops
were the best in the Mexican army, veterans of the
civil war, and disciplined so far as the system of ser-
vice was capable of doing it. From Saltillo Santa
Anna dispatched General Urrea with 200 cavalry to
Matamoras, with instructions to take command of the
troops there, and move north to attack Refugio and
Goliad. Early in February, Santa Anna reached
Monova with his army, consisting of about 4000
men, and set out with an escort of fifty cavalry to
join General Cos and General Sesma on the Rio
Grande. When the army was consolidated with the
troops under Cos and Sesma it numbered between
6000 and 7000 men. The march of the Mexican
army from Monova to San Antonio, a distance of
nearly 600 miles, was a most painful and trying one.
The greater portion of the country was almost a des-
ert, without inhabitants, except a few scattered vil-
lages, a barren plain without shelter and almost with-
out water. It was the dead of winter, and the snow
and sleet and piercing "northers" swept down upon
the thinly clad and unacclimated troops. In accord-
FALL OF THE ALAMO 139
ance with the Mexican custom, a great crowd of
women, wives of the soldiers, and camp followers ac-
companied the march, and added to the distress and
difficulty. In spite of rapacious demands upon the
inhabitants of the villages, food fell short, and the
army was put on half rations. The animals died in
great numbers, and it was with extreme difficulty
that the cannons and wagons were dragged along.
But the imperious energy of Santa Anna whipped
the army along, and the advance guard appeared be-
fore San Antonio on February 22.
The garrison was taken by surprise. No scouting
parties had been sent out, and so careless were the
Texans that they had been attending a fandango two
nights before, while Santa Anna was encamped on the
Medina. He was informed of the condition of the
garrison, and attempted to move forward for the sur-
prise of the place during the night. But the ammu-
nition wagons were on the west side of the river,
the stream was swollen, and a heavy norther was
blowing, so that he gave up his design. The first
knowledge of the approach of the Mexican army was
from the sentinels on the roof of the church. Their
alarm was disbelieved at first, and two horsemen were
sent out to reconnoitre. They came upon the enemy
at Prospect Hill, an eminence a short distance west
of the town, and were pursued by the Mexicans, one
of them being thrown from his horse and breaking his
arm. The garrison hastily retreated across the river
to the Alamo, Lieutenant A. M. Dickenson catching
140 SAM HOUSTON
up his wife and cliilcl on his horse at the door of a
Mexican house. As the garrison crossed the plain
they swept up with them thirty or forty beef cattle,
and drove them into the plaza of the fortress. When
Santa Anna reached San Antonio he sent a flag with
a demand for the immediate surrender of the Mis-
sion. Travis dispatched Major Morris and Captain
Marten to meet the flag, and on the return of his
messengers gave his answer by an emphatic "no"
from a cannon shot. The blood-red flag of "no quar-
ter" was hoisted on the tower of the church of San
Fernando, and the siege was begun by a cannonade
from the Mexican guns.
The Mission of the Alamo, which signifies the cot-
tonwood-tree, was established, where it then stood,
in 1722. It had been founded by the Franciscan
friars from the college at Queretaro in 1710, in the
valley of the Eio Grande, and after several removals
on account of the scarcity of water and the attacks
of the Indians, it had been finally located at San An-
tonio. The buildings of the Mission consisted of a
church in the usual form of a cross, with walls of
hewn stone, five feet thick, and twenty-two and a
half feet high. The church faced to the westward,
toward the river and the town. The central portion
of the church was roofless at the time of the siege ;
but arched rooms on each side of the entrance and
the sacristy, which was used as a powder magazine,
were strongly covered with a roof of masonry. The
windows were high up from the floor, and close and
FALL OF THE ALAMO 141
narrow, to protect the congregation from the flights
of Indian arrows. The front was decorated with bat-
tered carvings and stone images, and the entrance
was barred by heavy oaken doors. Adjoining the
church on the left and touching the wing of the cross
formed by its walls was the convent yard, an inclos-
ure about a hundred feet square, with walls sixteen
feet high and three and a half feet thick, strength-
ened on the inside with an embankment of earth to
half their height. At the farther or southeastern
corner of the convent yard was a sally port, defended
by a small redoubt. The convent and hospital build-
ing, of adobe bricks, two stories in height and eight-
een feet in width, extended along the west side of
the yard to the distance of 191 feet. It contained
one long room in the hospital, and a number of small
rooms and cells. The main plaza extended in front
of the church and convent in the form of a parallelo-
gram, with its side toward the river, and covered
between two and three acres. It was inclosed by a
wall eight feet high and thirty-three inches thick.
On the southern end of the plaza were buildings used
as a prison and barracks, and a heavy stockade of
cedar logs had been planted from this corner of the
plaza, which extended some twenty yards beyond the
line of the church, diagonally to the corner of the
church, and protected the entrance. Other build-
ings and houses occupied places on the inside of the
wall of the plaza, but were not of much strength
or consequence. The Mission was entirely isolated
142 SAM HOUSTON
from the town, which was wholly on the west bank
of the river, with the exception of a few miserable
jacals on the eastern bank. There was a plentiful
supply to water from the acequias, one on the south
connecting with a ditch through the plaza, and the
other skirting with its shallow, greenish stream the
east end of the church.
To defend this extensive place Travis had fourteen
pieces of artillery. These were mounted on the walls
of the church fronting north, south, and east; two
were planted at the stockade, and two at the main
entrance to the plaza; four defended the redoubt at
the entrance to the convent yard, and others were
placed at various points along the walls. There were
no redoubts or bastions, except the single outwork in
front of the sally port to the convent yard. It was
evidently impossible to defend so wide a space with
so small a garrison, and the defense was mainly con-
centrated about the church and convent. Travis had
been as careless about his supply of provisions as
about his guard. Only three bushels of corn were at
first found in the Alamo, but some eighty or ninety
bushels were afterward discovered in one of the
houses.
The garrison, when it entered the Alamo, consisted
of 145 men. The garrison comprised the men who
had remained after the departure of the expedition
under Grant, and such volunteers as had since strag-
gled in. They had no training in arms, except in
the use of the rifle, which was a necessity of their
THE ALAMO MISSION
I. Alamo Church. 2. Convent. 3. Inclosure or Plaza. 4 and 5.
Prison and Entrance Gate. 6. House and Wall. '7, Powder Magazine.
9. Stockade. 10. Redoubt.
FALL OF THE ALAMO 143
daily existence. Tliey were without definite military
organization, and were only held together by a com-
mon heroic purpose. The commander, Lieutenant-
Colonel William Barrett Travis, was a native of
North Carolina, twenty-eight years of age, and by
profession a lawyer. He had taken a prominent part
in the early troubles with the Mexican authorities,
and was on the proscribed list of Santa Anna. In
appearance he was six feet in height, erect and manly
in figure, with blue eyes, reddish hair, and round
face. The second in command was Colonel James
Bowie, famous all over the West as the inventor
of the terrible knife which bote his name. He
was a native of Georgia, but removed to Chata-
houla parish in Louisiana. While there he fought a
desperate duel with one Norris W^right on a sand bar
in the Mississippi. Bowie was shot down, and
Wright bent down to dispatch him, when Bowie drew
his knife and stabbed him to the heart. Bowie ac-
companied Long's filibuster expedition to Texas, and
afterward remained in the territory, engaged in
smuggling African slaves from Galveston and in va-
rious adventures. He had a prolonged and desperate
fight with the Comanches, while at the head of a
party in search of the old San Saba gold mines, and
his hardihood and courage had become proverbial.
He was a large, fair man, and, like many of the
early Texans, occasionally worked off the fervor of
his animal spirits by tremendous debauches of drink-
ing. Another very notable figure among the defend-
144 SAM HOUSTON
ers of the Alamo was David Crockett. Crockett was
a native of Tennessee, where he was born August 17,
1776. He had spent his life in the woods, and was
a mighty deer and bear hunter. He had also served
as a soldier in the war of 1812. Without education,
he had a shrewd and taking humor, and a great gift
for popularity among the rude frontier population.
He was a sort of king at the shooting matches and
other rustic gatherings, and became a frontier politi-
cian. He was elected to the state legislature, and
afterward for two terms as a Eepresentative in Con-
gress, where he figured as a sort of eccentric curios-
ity. He was shrewd enough to exploit his character-
istics as a backwoodsman, and was exhibited as a
lion in Washington society. He visited the North
on a popular tour, and published several books de-
tailing his life and adventures, and a political bur-
lesque biography of Martin Van Bur en, written in a
quaint and forcible style.^ He was so impolitic as to
set himself in opposition to the authority of President
Jackson, and was defeated in his attempt to secure a
third election to Congress. He resolved to try and
renew his fortunes in Texas, and came to the territory
in 1836. He arrived with twelve Tennesseeans at
San Antonio about three weeks before the opening
of the siege of the Alamo. In person he was tall
and s]3are, with black hair and angular features ex-
pressive of his shrewd humor. He dressed in buck-
^ The book purporting- to be written by Crockett, and describing-
his adventures in Texas, is obviously a fabrication.
FALL OF THE ALAMO 145
skin, carried his favorite long rifle "Betsy," and was
conspicuous by his coonskin cap. Another man of
distinction among the defenders of the Alamo was
Colonel J. B. Bonham, of South Carolina, who had
responded to the call of Texas for volunteers, and
arrived in San Antonio shortly before the commence-
ment of the siege.
Santa Anna commenced his operations by erecting
batteries for his fieldpieces, but did not make a com-
plete investment of the Mission! The defenders
occasionally re;^lied with their cannon, but in the
main depended upon their rifles, which seldom missed
their mark. General Castrillon, under orders from
Santa Anna, attempted to build a bridge across the
river from the timbers of the houses. The party was
within the reach of the rifles of the Texans, and in a
few minutes thirty were killed. The survivors were
withdrawn.
Travis sent the following appeal for assistance to
the government, which has a stirring and heroic
ring : —
TO THE PEOPLE OF TEXAS AND ALL AMERICANS IN
THE WORLD.
Command ANCY of the Alamo,
Bexar, February 24, 1836.
Fellow-Citizens and Compatriots, — I am be-
sieged by a thousand or more of the Mexicans under
Santa Anna. I have sustained a continued bombard-
ment for twenty -four hours, and have not lost a man.
146 SAM HOUSTON
The enemy have demanded a surrender at discretion ;
otherwise the garrison is to be put to the sword if the
place is taken. I have answered the summons with
a cannon shot, and our flag still waves proudly from
the walls. / shall never surrender or retreat. Then
I call on you in the name of liberty, of patriotism,
and of everything dear to the American character, to
come to our aid with all dispatch. The enemy are
receiving reinforcements daily, and will no doubt in-
crease to three or four thousand in four or five days.
Though this call may be neglected, I am determined
to sustain myself as long as possible, and die like a
soldier who never forgets what is due to his own
honor and that of his country. Victory or death !
W. Bareett Travis,
Lieutenant- Colonel, Commanding,
P. S. The Lord is on our side. When the army
appeared in sight we had not three bushels of corn.
We have since found in deserted houses eighty or
ninety bushels, and got into the walls twenty or
thirty beeves.^
1 The letter, in a firm and bold handwriting, now among- the state
archives at Austin, has the following indorsements on the back by
the couriers, who forwarded it : —
" Since the above was written I heard a very heavy cannonade dur-
ing the whole day. Think there must have been an attack on the
Alamo. We were short of ammunition when I left. Hurry all the
men you can forth. When I left there were but 150 men determined
to do or die. To-morrow I leave for Bexar with what men I can.
Almonte is there. The troops are commanded by General Sesma.
Albert Martin."
FALL OF THE ALAMO 147
Colonel Bonham was also dispatcliecl witli a mes-
sage to Colonel Fannin at Goliad asking him to come
to the assistance of the garrison.
On the 25th Santa Anna endeavored to erect a
battery 300 yards south of the main entrance to the
plaza, and a sharp skirmish took place in which eight
Mexicans were killed. The enemy succeeded in
erecting the battery during the night, and also one
near the old powder house to the southeast. The
same night the Mexican cavalry were stationed on
the road leading to the east. On the 26th there was
a skirmish between the Texans and the Mexican cav-
alry on the eastern road, and during the night a
party sallied out and burnt the jacals on the east side
of the river, which had afforded shelter to the enemy.
Santa Anna's troops continued to arrive, and the in-
vestment of the Mission was made more complete.
But it was not close enough to prevent the entrance
of a party of thirty -two men from Gonzales, under
Captain J. W. Smith, who stole their way through
the enemy's lines, and joined the garrison on the
night of March 1. On March 3, Colonel Bonham
returned with a message from Colonel Fannin that
he would march at once for the relief of the garrison.
Fannin started on the 28th of February with 300
men and four pieces of artillery. His ammunition
" I hope that every one will Rendeves at Gonzales as soon Possible
as the Brave soldiers are suffering- ; don not forget the powder is very
scarce and should not he delad one moment.
L. Smither."
148 SAM HOUSTON
wagon broke down, and he had not oxen enough to
get his cannon across the river. The troops had no
provisions except some rice and a little dried beef,
and, after a council with his officers, Fannin decided
to return to Goliad. On the 3d of March, Travis
sent off his last message to the government : —
/ "I am still here in fine spirits and well-to-do.
With 145 men, I have held the place against a force
variously estimated from between 1500 to 6000, and
I shall continue to hold it until I get relief from my
countrymen, or I will perish in its defense. We
have had a shower of bombs and cannon balls contin-
ually falling among us the whole time ; yet none of
us have fallen. We have been miraculously pre-
served. . . . Again, I feel confident that the deter-
mined spirit and desperate courage heretofore ex-
hibited by my men will not fail them in the last
struggle; and although they may be sacrificed to the
vengeance of a Gothic enemy, the victory will cost
that enemy so dear that it will be worse than a de-
feat. ... A blood-red flag waves from the church
of Bexar and in the camp above us, in token that the
war is one of vengeance against rebels. . . . These
threats have had no influence upon my men but to
make all fight with desperation and with that high-
souled courage which characterize the patriot who is
willing to die in defense of his country ; liberty and
his own honor; God and Texas; victory or death! "
The enemy had effected but little by their cannon-
ade, their guns being only fieldpieces of light calibre.
FALL OF THE ALAMO 149
The garrison, however, was worn down by constant
vigilance night and day, and frequent alarms in ex-
pectation of an attack.
After Santa Anna's troops had all arrived on
March 2, they were given three days in which to rest
after their weary march. On the 5th, Santa Anna
held a council of war on the question of an immediate
assault of the Alamo. A portion of the officers were
in favor of awaiting the arrival of siege artillery, but
Santa Anna determined on an assault the next day.
On the morning of the 6th of March, Sunday, the
forces for the assault were formed at four o'clock.
The troops numbered 2500, and were divided into
four columns. The first was under the command of
General Cos, the second under Colonel Duque, the
third under Colonel Eomero, and the fourth under
Colonel Morales. The columns were supplied with
scaling ladders, crowbars, and axes. The cavalry
were drawn around the fort to prevent any attempt at
escape. In the gray light of the morning the bugle
sounded, and the bands struck up the Spanish air of
Deguelo (Cut-throat), the signal of no quarter.
Santa Anna witnessed the attack from the battery in
front of the plaza. The troops dashed forward at a
run, and were received with a deadly fire from the
artillery and rifles. The column attacking the north-
ern wall recoiled, and Colonel Duque was desperately
wounded. The attacks on the eastern and western
walls also failed, and the columns swarmed around to
the north side. Here in a dense mass they were
150 SAM HOUSTON
driven forward by the blows and shouts of their
officers. Once more they recoiled before the fire, but
at the third trial they scaled the wall, "tumbling
over it like sheep." They carried the redoubt at the
sally port, and swarmed into the convent yard, for-
cing the Texans into the convent and hospital. The
captured cannon were turned against the flimsy adobe
walls, and the Mexicans stormed the breaches. The
Texans fought from room to room, using their
clubbed rifles and bowie knives so long as they had
life left to strike. Colonel Travis and Colonel Bon-
ham fell here. The Mexicans fired a howitzer loaded
with grape twice into the long room of the hospital.
Fifteen Texans were found dead in the room, and
forty-two Mexicans on the outside. The last struggle
took place in the church. The column attacking on
the south side carried the stockade and poured into
the church. Major T. C. Evans, the commander of
the artillery, started for the magazine to blow up the
building, as the defenders had agreed should be done
at the last extremity, but was struck down by a
musket shot as he was entering the door. Crockett
was killed near the entrance, with his clubbed rifle in
his hand. Bowie was lying, disabled by a fall from
a platform, on a cot in the arched room to the left of
the entrance. He was shot through the door as he
lay on his bed firing his pistols. Mrs. Dickenson,
wife of Lieutenant Dickenson, and her infant child
had been placed in the opposite room for safety. A
wounded man by the name of Walters fled into the
FALL OF THE ALAMO 151
room. He was pursued by the Mexicans, who shot
him, and then raised his body on their bayonets, "as
a farmer does a bundle of fodder," until the blood
ran down upon them. Mrs. Dickenson was protected
by the interposition of Colonel Almonte. Mrs. Als-
bury, a Mexican woman, niece and adopted daughter
of the Vice-Governor Veramendi, and her little sister
had gone to the Alamo with their brother-in-law,
Colonel Bowie, and waited upon him after his injury.
When the slaughter was over they came out of their
hiding-place, and were protected by a Mexican officer.
They were afterward recognized by a friend among
the spectators, and taken to their home in San An-
tonio. Mrs. Alsbury and her sister, Mrs. Dickenson
and her child, a negro boy, servant of Colonel Travis,
and a Mexican woman were the only persons spared
by the Mexicans.
At nine o'clock the Alamo had fallen. Santa
Anna left the shelter of the battery and came upon
the scene. Five persons, who had hid themselves,
were brought before him. General Castrillon inter-
ceded for their lives, but Santa Anna turned his
back upon him with a reprimand for his weakness,
and the Mexican soldiers dispatched them with their
bayonets.
After the slaughter the bodies of the dead Texans
were collected by the order of Santa Anna, and piled
together with alternate layers of wood. The mass
was then heaped with dry brush and burned. The
ashes and bones were left to the dogs and the vul-
152 SAM HOUSTON
tures. A year later, wliat remained were placed in a
coffin by order of Colonel Jolin Seguin, mayor of
San Antonio, and buried with military honors. The
number of the dead cannot be known with absolute
accuracy. It was probably in the neighborhood of
180, of whom the names of 166 are known. Several
couriers had been sent out during the siege, all of
whom did not return. Captain J. W. Smith, of the
Gonzales party, escaped with Travis's message of
March 3, and it is possible that there were other mes-
sengers, who were cut off by the Mexican cavalry.
All the garrison were Americans except three Mexi-
cans who had joined them from the town.
The loss of the Mexicans in the assault has never
been ascertained. Santa Anna, in his official report,
said that there were only 70 killed and 300 wounded.
Bu^ this was obviously an outrageous lie, as he also
said that the Texans numbered 400, and that the
attacking party consisted of only 1400. Various
estimates give the loss of the Mexicans at between
300 and 500 killed, or who afterward died of their
wounds. Dr. Bernard, who was taken prisoner at
Goliad, and sent to attend the sick at San Antonio,
said that the Mexican surgeons told him that over
400 wounded soldiers were brought into the hospitals
after the assault. Sergeant Bercero, one of the at-
tacking party, in giving his reminiscence of the as-
sault, said : " There was an order to gather our dead
and wounded. It was a painful sight. Our lifeless
soldiers covered the ground surrounding the Alamo.
FALL OF THE ALAMO 153
They were heaped inside the fortress. Blood and
brains covered the earth and floor, and were spattered
on the walls. The killed were generally struck on
the head. The wounds were generally in the neck or
shoulders, seldom below that."
The defense of the Alamo was a mistake in stra-
tegic warfare. It was impossible that the small gar-
rison could successfully defend the post against the
overwhelming force of Santa Anna's army. The
defenders undoubtedly knew it. It is said that
Travis drew them together, and addressed them in
terms that could have left no doubt in their minds ;
but whether that was so or not, they were aware that
there was very little chance of their receiving succor
from the Texan army. They could have made their
escape, even after the investment of the Alamo, as
easily as the party from Gonzales made their way
into the fort. They could have found refuge in the
timber of the streams, and with their skill in wood-
craft have made their way safely south to the forces
under Fannin at Goliad, or east to the settlements of
the colonists. Their determination to remain was
the impulse of their invincible courage, the strong
vigor of their cool and desperate natures. They
were ready to die in their tracks sooner than give way
before an enemy they hated and despised, and they
counted on the fight as only one of the many desper-
ate chances of their lives. The lesson of the cost of
taking the Alamo, and overwhelming its handful of
defenders, would have warned Santa Anna, if he had
154 SAM HOUSTON
boon loss headstrong and vainglorions, that the task
of snbdning the Texan colonists was an impossible
one. l>ut with its capture he seemed to think that
the oonqiiest of Texas was already accomplished. He
sent oft' bombastic dispatches to the anthorities in the
city of Mexico, and, after giving orders to his snbor-
dinates to complete the campaign, made preparations
to retnrn. Mrs. Dickenson was fnrnishod with a
horse, and made the bearer of a proclamation to the
colonists, annonncing the captnre of the Alamo, and
calling npon them to snbmit to the ^lexicaii anthor-
ity. She crossed the prairies alone, with her child in
her arms, nntil she reached the Salado Creek, where
she came upon the negro servant of Travis, who had
made his escape from the Mexicans, hiding in the
woods. They made their way together to Gonzales.
A change had t:\lven place in the minds of the lead-
ing men in Texas in regard to the policy of a total
separation from Mexico. It was discovered that the
Liberal party in Mexico was utterly powerless, and
that the people, almost without exception, were hos-
tile to the American colonists, and wished them sub-
dued. As early as January 7 Houston wrote to
^lajor eTolm Forbes, saying, ''I now feel confident that
no further experiment need be made to con^dnce us
that there is but one course left for Texas to pursue,
and that is an unequivocal declaration of indepen-
dence, and the formation of a constitution to be sub-
mitted to the people for their rejection or ratifica-
tion." Austin wrote a letter from New Orleans,
CREATION OF THE REPUBLIC 155
which was published in the newspaper, stating that
when he left the country he considered it premature
to stir the question of independence, but the news
from Vera Cruz and Tampico was that the Liberal
party had united with Santa Anna to put down the
Texans. Public opinion in the United States was
strongly in favor of a declaration of independence by
Texas, and he could not have obtained the loan with-
out the belief that the Convention would take such a
course. Whatever difference of opinion there might
have been as to the time for such action he hoped
there would be none now. The colonists were thor-
oughly disgusted with the quarrels of the Governor
and Council, and anxious to have a new and more
rigorous government. It is likely that the majority
of them would have been ready at any time to throw
off the Mexican authority, and separate from a coun-
try with which they had no natural affiliation, and
whose government they tolerated only so long as it
left them practically alone.
The General Convention called by the Council met
at Washington, March 1, 1835. Fifty-eight dele-
gates were present. Richard Ellis, of the Red River
district, was elected president, and H. S. Kimble
secretary. On the following day the declaration of
independence was adopted. In its preamble it set
forth the grievances of the people of Texas. It de-
clared that the Federative Republic of Mexico had
been changed without their consent to a consolidated
military despotism, in which every interest was dis-
156 SAM HOUSTON
regarded except that of the army and priesthood;
that their agents bearing petitions had been thrown
into dungeons; that the Mexican government had
failed to maintain the right of trial by jury; denied
the right of worshiping the Almighty according to
the dictates of conscience; had made piratical attacks
upon the Texan commerce; commanded the colonists
to deliver up their arms necessary for their defense
against the savages; had invaded their territory by
sea and land; and had incited the merciless savages
to massacre the defenseless inhabitants of the fron-
tiers. It concluded : —
"These and other grievances were patiently borne
by the people of Texas until they reached the point
at which forbearance ceases to be a virtue. We then
took up arms in defense of the National Constitution.
We appealed to our Mexican brethren for assistance;
our appeal has been made in vain; although months
have elapsed, no sympathetic response has yet been
heard from the interior. We are therefore forced
to the melancholy conclusion that the Mexican people
have acquiesced in the destruction of their liberty,
and the substitution therefor of a military govern-
ment ; that they are unfit to be free and incapable of
self-government.
"The necessity of self-preservation, therefore, now
decrees our eternal political separation.
"We, therefore, the delegates, with plenary pow-
ers, of the people of Texas, in solemn Convention
assembled, appealing to a candid world for the neces-
CREATION OF THE REPUBLIC 157
sities of our condition, do hereby resolve and declare
that our political connection with the Mexican nation
has forever ended, and that the people of Texas do
now constitute a free, sovereign, and independent
Eepublic, and are fully invested with all the rights
and attributes which properly belong to independent
nations ; and, conscious of the rectitude of our inten-
tions, we fearlessly and confidently commit the issue
to the Supreme Arbiter of the destinies of nations."
On the 4th of March, Sam Houston was unani-
mously reelected commander-in-chief with authority
over all the forces, regulars and volunteers. Ordi-
nances were adopted for the reorganization of the
army, and for the enrollment of all citizens between
the ages of seventeen and fifty to be subject to drafts.
Increased bounties of land were offered to volunteers :
1280 acres for those already enlisted, who should
serve during the war, 640 acres for six months' ser-
vice, and 320 acres for three months; 960 acres were
offered for the new recruits who should serve during
the war.
There was great excitement over the news of the
beleaguerment of the Alamo. On March^ 2 Houston
issued the following appeal to the people of Texas : —
Convention Hall, March 2, 1836.
War is raging on the frontiers. Bexar is besieged
by two thousand of the enemy under the command of
General Sesma. Reinforcements are on their march
to unite with the besieging army. By the last report
158 SAAI HOUSTON
our force at Bexar was only one hundred and fifty
men. The citizens of Texas must rally to the aid of
our army or it will perish. Let the citizens of the
East march to the combat. The enemy must be
driven from our soil or desolation will accompany
their march upon us. Independence is declared. It
must be maintained. Immediate action, united with
valor, can alone achieve our great work. The ser-
vices of all are forthwith required in the field.
Sam Houston,
Oommander-in- Chief of the Army,
P. S. It is rumored that the enemy are on their
march to Gonzales, and that they have entered the
colonies. The fate of Bexar is unknown. The coun-
try must and shall be defended. The patriots of
Texas are appealed to in hehalf of their bleeding
country,
A hundred or so of men were gathered about
Washington, but there was no organization, and no
attempt to march to the relief of the Alamo. On
Sunday, March 6, the day of the fall of the Alamo,
the letter of Colonel Travis making a last appeal for
aid was handed to the president of the Convention.
He hastily summoned the members together, and read
it to them. There was a scene of intense feeling.
Eobert Potter moved that the Convention adjourn,
arm, and march for the relief of the Alamo. Hous-
ton declared the resolution to be folly and treason
to the people. He urged the Convention to re-
CREATION OF THE REPUBLIC 159
main and finisli its work of organizing the govern-
ment, without which the declaration of independence
would be a vain fulmination. He promised that no
enemy should approach them, and announced his in-
tention to start at once for Gonzales. The Conven-
tion recovered from its excitement, and within an
hour Houston was on his way to Gonzales, accom-
panied only by Colonel George W. Hockley, his
chief of staff, and one or two others. While on his
way he dispatched a letter to the Convention advis-
ing it to declare Texas a part of Louisiana under the
treaty of 1803, and therefore belonging to the United
States. The advice was not adopted, and it is not
likely that it would have made any difference in the
action of the United States, as that country had
abandoned any such claim from Mexico.
The Convention continued its work, and adopted
a series of ordinances for the formation of a provi-
sional government. David G. Burnet was elected
President, and Lorenzo D. Zavala Vice-President.
Samuel P. Carson was appointed Secretary of State,
Baily Hardiman, Secretary of the Treasury, Thomas
J. Kusk, Secretary of War, Eobert Potter, Secretary
of the Navy, and David Thomas, Attorney-General.
The government was authorized to contract for a
loan of 11,000,000, to enter into treaties with foreign
nations, and to decide upon the time for the election
of permanent officers. The President issued a fervent
appeal for sympathy and aid to the people of the
United States. On the 16th, the Constitution of the
160 SAM HOUSTON
Republic of Texas was adopted, and signed the fol-
lowing day. It provided for tlie establishment of an
Executive, a Legislature to consist of two bodies,
Senate and House of Representatives, and a Judi-
ciary to be governed by the common law of England.
Slavery was established, and owners were forbidden
to manumit their slaves without the consent of Con-
gress. Free negroes were forbidden to reside in the
territory. The importation of slaves, except from
the United States, was punishable as piracy. The
head rights of settlers were fixed at one league and
a labor for each head of a family, and one third of a
league to each single man of seventeen years of age
or upwards, but the location of grants was suspended
until the men serving in the army could have an
equal choice. Freedom and equality for all forms of
religious belief were decreed; the rights of trial by
jury and writ of habeas corpus, except in cases of
treason, and the freedom of the press were estab-
lished. No man was to be imprisoned for debt, and
titles of nobility and monopolies were forbidden.
The Constitution was signed by fifty members, three
of whom were Mexicans, and the Convention ad-
journed on the 17th. The provisional government
at once removed its headquarters to Harrisburg on
the Buffalo Bayou.
CHAPTER X
THE MASSACEE OF GOLIAD
Travis's morning and evening guns had ceased to
send their signals over the prairie to the ears of the
listening scouts from Gonzales five days before Hous-
ton's arrival, and on the 11th of March, when he
reached the town, definite news of the fall of the
Alamo had been received from the mouth of Antonio
Borgaro, a Mexican from San Antonio. Houston
instantly sent off a swift dispatch with the news to
Colonel Fannin at Goliad, with orders to blow up the
fort and evacuate the place. He was directed to
bring away as many pieces of artillery as he could,
and sink the rest in the river. He was to march to
Victoria on the Guadalupe River, intrench himself,
and await further orders. Every facility was to be
afforded to the women and children who wished to
leave the place. Prompt action was urged, as the
enemy were reported to be advancing, and there was
likely to be a rise in the waters. On the 13th, Mrs.
Dickenson reached Gonzales, and brought a confirma-
tion of the news of the capture of the Alamo, and the
slaughter of its defenders. There was a scene of
wild grief and panic in the little town. The larger
portion of its male citizens had formed the party
162 SAM HOUSTON
which had joined the defenders of the Alamo, and
perished with them. Twenty women were made
widows by the slaughter, and almost every family
had lost one of its members. There were rumors
that the Mexican troops had reached the Cibolo Creek
on their way to Gonzales, and preparations were
made for immediate flight. Those who had wagons
loaded them with such things as they could carry,
and women mounted on horseback with their children
in their arms for a wild flight across the prairie.
One woman, who had lost her husband in the Alamo,
rushed frantically about the streets with disheveled
hair, screaming for the Mexicans to come and kill
her and her children. Houston exerted himself to
calm the violence, and bring some order out of the
panic. When Houston reached Gonzales he found
about 800 militia men gathered there without organi-
zation, and about a hundred more had come in since.
It was useless to attempt to resist the advance of
Santa Anna with any such force, and Houston deter-
mined to fall back to the line of the Colorado, and
await the junction of the troops under Fannin. That
night the troops were gathered together and, escorting
the wagons containing the women and children, set
out on the forlorn march over the wet prairie. Two
small cannon were thrown into the river for the want
of means to bring them away, and a single wagon,
drawn by four feeble oxen, contained all the muni-
tions and supplies of the army. After leaving the
town it was set on fire, and as the band struggled on
THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 163
in the darkness their backward glances could see the
lights of their blazing homes on the horizon. Deaf
Smith and Henry Karnes were left behind as scouts
to watch for the approach of the Mexicans. The next
day, at Peach Creek, fifteen miles from Gonzales, a
party of 125 volunteers was met, twenty-five of whom
left on hearing the news of the fall of the Alamo.
Thirty -five more joined them during the day, making
the number remaining with the force 474. When the
party reached Nevada Creek, fifteen miles from the
Colorado, Houston learned that a blind widow with
six children had been ignorantly left at a house some
distance from the road. He sent a party back to
bring them in, and delayed his march until they ar-
rived. He sent Major William T. Austin, his aid-
de-camp, to the mouth of the Brazos for six cannon
which were supposed to be there, and pushed on to
the Colorado, which he reached on the 17th. He
made his camp on the west bank of the river at a
place known as Burnham's Crossing, and awaited the
news from Fannin.
While Santa Anna had been advancing upon San
Antonio, General Urrea, with his escort of cavalry,
had proceeded to Mat amor as, and taken command of
the troops there for an advance to the north. He
left Matamoras on February 18 with a force of be-
tween 900 and 1000 men, and reached San Patricio
on the 27th. He immediately asaulted the barracks
in a storm of rain. The garrison of forty men, under
Captain Peirce, made a desperate resistance, but the
164 SAM HOUSTON
building was taken. The prisoners, to the number
of twenty -four, were shot by order of General Urrea.
Colonel Johnson and three companions, who were in
a house in the town, made their escape through the
back door, and found their way to Kefugio. Dr.
Grant and a party of forty men were out on a
horse-raiding expedition toward the Eio Grande.
They had previously captured Captain Rodriguez and
sixty-six Mexicans with a caballada of horses. The
party was released under parole, but broke their
parole, and joined the forces under Urrea. After
the capture of San Patricio, Urrea set out in pursuit
of Grant. He discovered Grant's party on the 2d
of March near the Aqua Dulce, returning with a
herd of captured horses. He set an ambush, and the
Mexicans charged upon Grant's party from two belts
of timber through which they were passing. The
greater portion of Grant's men were killed in the
charge. But he and a man named Reuben R. Brown
fled across the prairie. They were pursued, and,
after a desperate race of seven miles, Grant was
killed by a lance thrust. Brown was lassoed from
his horse, and made a prisoner.
When Fannin received Houston's dispatch order-
ing him to abandon Goliad and fall back upon Vic-
toria, he was in command of about 500 men. They
consisted almost entirely of volunteers from the
United States. Fannin, in his letter to the Council,
had complained that there were less than half a dozen
Texans in his ranks. They were divided into two
THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 165
battalions, known as the "Georgia" and the "La
Fayette." The first consisted of "Ward's, Wads-
worth's, and Tucker's companies from Alabama and
Georgia. The second included the New Orleans
"Grays," Captain Pettes; the "Mustangs" of Ken-
tucky, Captain Duval ; the Mobile "Grays," Captain
McManeman; a company from Louisville and Hunts-
ville, Tennessee, Captain Bradford; Captain King's
company from Georgia; and the "Red Rovers" of
Alabama, Captain Shackleford. There was also a
small squadron of cavalry under Captain Horton, and
a detachment of artillery under Captain Westover.
Colonel Fannin had built an earthwork around the
old Mission church, which he called Fort Defiance,
and prepared to defend the place. Learning of the
advance of Urrea he sent an order to the garrison of
San Patricio to join him, but had been disobeyed.
He then sent Captain King with twenty-eight men to
bring in the families from Refugio. Captain King
arrived at Refugio on the 12th of March. Before he
could remove the families he was attacked by the ad-
vance guard of Urrea's cavalry, and took refuge in
the old stone church of the Mission. He dispatched
a message to Colonel Fannin for assistance, and Fan-
nin sent Lieutenant-Colonel Ward with 120 men.
King defended the church until the arrival of Ward
on the evening of the 13th, and preparations were
made for a retreat the next day. But in the morn-
ing Urrea arrived with the main body of his force.
On the news of his approach. Captain King was sent
166 SAM HOUSTON
out with a party of thirteen men to reconnoitre, and
was attacked by a strong force of cavalry. Ward
sallied out to his assistance, but was beaten back,
and compelled to retreat to the church. Captain
King was cut off, and compelled to surrender. He
and his men were tied to post oak-trees and shot.
Their bodies were left unburied, and their skeletons
were afterward found fastened to the trees. Ward
and his party were besieged in the Mission church.
The building was in ruins, but its walls were strong.
Urrea brought up a four-pounder to batter in the
door, and attempted to take the church by assault.
The attack was repulsed by the deadly fire of the
rifles, and in the evening the enemy withdrew to their
camp, leaving pickets around the building. The
Texans, finding their ammunition nearly exhausted,
determined to escape during the night. There was
the painful necessity of leaving behind three of the
comrades who had been disabled during the fight.
They filled the canteens of the wounded with water,
and left them to the mercy of the Mexicans, who
afterward butchered them. The party broke through
the patrol guard, and started to find their way to
Victoria, where they expected to meet Fannin. They
took a circuitous route through swamps and forests,
so as to avoid the pursuit of the enemy's cavalry, and
reached Victoria on the 20th. They found Victoria
in possession of the enemy, and were attacked by a
force of cavalry. They retreated into the swamps of
the Guadalupe, where they spent the night. In the
THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 167
morning, having not a single round of ammunition
left, they surrendered, and were marched back as
prisoners to Goliad.
Fannin waited six days for the return of Ward and
King, sending off courier after courier in a vain at-
tempt to obtain news. On the 18th he received
definite news that the church was taken, and that
Ward had retreated in the direction of Victoria. A
scouting party of cavalry was sent out under Captain
Horton, who reported that a large force was ad-
vancing slowly from the direction of San Antonio.
Some skirmishing took place during the day with ad-
vance parties of Urrea's cavalry. In the evening a
consultation of the officers was held, and it was de-
cided to retreat the next day. The heavy pieces of
cannon were buried, the fort was dismantled, and the
provisions and supplies, which could not be taken
with the force, destroyed. The force set out on its
march toward Victoria on the morning of the 19th.
It numbered about 350 men, and had nine fieldpieces
and a howitzer, and a number of wagons drawn by
oxen. The morning was extremely thick and foggy,
and it took until ten o'clock to get the train across
the San Antonio River. The march was begun across
an open prairie, skirted with belts of timber, toward
the Coleto Creek, about ten miles from the town.
Not a Mexican had been seen, except a couple of
mounted videttes, and when within about three miles
of the sheltering timber of the Coleto, Fannin or-
dered a halt at a place where the grass had sprung up
168 SAM HOUSTON
green after being burned over, to allow his cattle to
graze. It was a fatal error. Fannin was remon-
strated witli by some of bis officers, and urged to
push on to the timber. But he appears to have held
the Mexicans in contempt, and imagined that they
would not dare to molest him.
After a halt of about an hour and a half, and just
as the order had been given to hitch up the teams to
resume the march, a dark line of cavalry was seen
coming from a skirt of timber to the right of the
Texan force, and about two miles distant. They ad-
vanced at a gallop, and formed in a mass between
the Texans and the Coleto. A large body of infantry
followed the cavalry, and took a position in the rear,
rapidly advancing lines on both sides. The Texans
were caught in a trap. The train had been halted in
a depression of the prairie six or seven feet below the
general surface, and in an attempt to reach an emi-
nence an ammunition wagon broke down. The lines
were then drawn in a hollow square, three ranks
deep. The wagons were pushed in the centre, and
the artillery stationed at the corners. After the
Mexican forces had been posted so as to surround the
Texans, their cavalry advanced and opened a harm-
less fire with their escopetos. Fannin ordered his
men to lie down, and not to fire until the enemy came
within certain range. When they did so, the Texan
rifles emptied the foremost saddles, and drove them
back. Captain Horton, who had been sent forward
with the cavalry to examine the crossing over the
THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 169
Coleto, hearing the firing, galloped back to rejoin the
main body. But his party was attacked by the cav-
alry, and compelled to take flight through the woods
toward the settlements. The enemy appeared at two
o'clock, and at three, having made all his disposi-
tions, Urrea ordered a general charge upon the lines
from the two sides and the rear. They were received
with a withering fire from the artillery and the rifles,
each Texan being supplied with two or three loaded *
guns, and firing with great coolness and precision.
The Mexicans came on with great impetuosity, until
their front ranks were almost at the bayonet push.
The Texan fire, however, was so rapid and deadly
that they were compelled to fall back. The infan-
try were ordered to lie down within range, and fire
from that position, but were picked off by the Texans
whenever they raised their heads, and were com-
pelled to withdraw. Urrea endeavored to break the
Texan lines by a cavalry charge led by himself, but
it was broken by a discharge of grapeshot from the
howitzer and a volley from the rifles. For the third
time the assault was made, the officers pricking on
the men from behind with their swords. The in-
fantry were driven up close, but the cavalry broke
when scarcely within range. The plain was strewn
with the bodies of men and horses, and riderless
horses charged through the lines of infantry, throw-
ing them into still greater confusion, "until their
retreat resembled the headlong flight of a herd of
buffaloes." The Mexican troops were finally rallied,
170 SAM HOUSTON
and drawn up around the Texan lines out of range.
Colonel Fannin was severely wounded in the thigh
in the early part of the engagement, but continued
to command with great coolness and courage. The
Texan cannon were useless after a few discharges,
from becoming heated and clogged, there being no
water with which to sponge them.
After the assault had been given up the cavalry
were drawn around the lines in open order. They
kept up a harmless fire with their muskets and es-
co^jetos, to which the Texans responded with more
deadly effect. There were about a hundred Campea-
chy Indians with the Mexican forces. They crept
up around the Texan lines, taking advantage of every
hillock and tuft of thick grass, and opened a much
more deadly and accurate fire upon the besieged
force, killing and wounding a number of the Texans.
Four of them crept up to within a hundred yards,
and were firing with deadly effect, when Captain
Duval, an excellent marksman, undertook to dislodge
them. Taking a position behind a gun carriage he
fired every time an Indian showed his head, and
silenced them in four shots. As he fired his last shot
the forefiifger of his right hand was taken off by a
rifle ball. After the battle the four Indians were
found where they fell, each with a hole in his head.
During the fighting one of the wounded was Harry
Ripley, a youth of eighteen or nineteen, the son of
General Ripley, of Louisiana. He had his thigh
broken shortly after the Indians took to the grass.
THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 171
He asked Mrs. Cash, a lady of Goliad, who had
accompanied the retreat, to help him into her cart.
She fixed a prop for him to lean against, and a rest
for his rifle. He was seen to bring down four Mex-
icans before he received another wound, which broke
his right arm. He said to Mrs. Cash, "You may
take me down, now, mother. I have done my share.
They have paid exactly two for one on account of the
balls in me." The Indian firing began at dusk, but
as soon as the darkness rendered the flashes of the
guns more plainly visible, the Texan rifles were in-
stantaneously aimed at the spots, and soon put an
end to the discharges. Urrea drew off his troops, and
surrounded the Texan lines, his camp fires gleaming
redly in the darkness, and his guards keeping up a
continual cry of ^'' Sentinela alerte.^''
The night was one of extreme darkness and a heavy
fog. Colonel Fannin addressed the men, saying that
the only chance of escape was by a retreat during the
night to the timber of the Cole to. He said that there
was no doubt of their ability to do so, as the enemy
was much demoralized by the failure of their attacks,
but in the morning it would be too late, as the Mex-
icans would undoubtedly receive reinforcements. If
the majority of the men were in favor of the attempt
it should be made. But this would have necessitated
the abandonment of the wounded. There were sixty
of the men who had been hit, about forty of whom
were disabled. The men refused to abandon their
wounded comrades to the mercy of the Mexicans, and
172 SAM HOUSTON .
it was decided to remain. The lines were contracted
to tlie centre from the original area in which they had
fought the battle, and the night was spent by the
Texans in throwing up an earthen breastwork, which
was still further barricaded by the wagons and the
dead bodies of the oxen killed during the afternoon's
fight. It was so dark that the surgeons were unable
to attend to the wounded, who suffered intensely from
thirst. By an oversight the provisions had been left
behind, and the night wore away for the besieged
without food, or drink, or sleep. During the night
three men deserted, and attempted to reach the tim-
ber of the Coleto. But the re23orts from the muskets
of the Mexican patrols showed that they had been
intercepted and killed.
In the early morning, before it was fairly light,
reinforcements of 300 or 400 men were seen coming
to the enemy. They had with them two pieces of
artillery, and a hundred pack mules laden with
ammunition and supplies. The pieces were soon
trained, and the Mexicans opened fire with grape
and canister, shattering the wagons and ploughing
through the camp. The position of the Texans was
untenable. Their cannon were useless, and there
were but two or three rounds of ammunition left for
the small arms. A consultation of the officers was
hastily called, and the question was discussed of a
surrender. Fannin opposed it, saying, "We whipped
them off yesterday, and can do it again to-day."
But the majority were in favor of a surrender, if hon-
THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 173
orable and safe terms of capitulation could be ob-
tained. Tbe question was submitted to the men by
the commanders of the companies, and they agreed
that it was impossible to attempt to resist any longer.
The white flag was hoisted, and responded to by the
enemy. Colonel Fannin and Major Wallace, accom-
panied by Captain Durangue, as interpreter, went
out from the encampment. They were met halfway
between the lines by Colonel Salas, Lieutenant-Colo-
nel Holzinger, and Lieutenant Gonzales, the officers
sent by Urrea. After a conference the Texan officers
returned, and announced that articles had been agreed
on by which the besieged should surrender as prison-
ers of war, and be treated according to the usages of
civilized nations. The wounded were to be taken
back to Goliad and properly cared for. Private
property was to be respected. Dr. Joseph H. Ber-
nard, one of the surgeons, said that he saw what he
supposed to be the articles signed by Colonel Fannin,
and delivered to a Mexican officer, and believed that
each commander had a duplicate. It was rumored
about the camp that it was agreed that the men
should be sent to New Orleans at the first opportu-
nity, under parole not to serve any more during the
war in Texas. This was confirmed by the saying of
Lieutenant-Colonel Holzinger, the Mexican officer
appointed to receive the surrendered arms. As they
were delivered up he said, "Well, gentlemen, in ten
days liberty and home." The officers' arms were
received separately, nailed up in a box, and put on
174 SAM HOUSTON
one side, with the assurance that they should be de-
livered to them on their release.
The loss of the Texans in the battle, called by the
Mexicans "Encinal del Perdido," was seven killed
and sixty wounded, of whom some died before the
removal of the prisoners. The loss of the Mexicans
is not known with any accuracy. General Urrea
reported only eleven killed and fifty-four wounded,
which was a manifest absurdity. Dr. Bernard says
that he assisted in attending over a hundred of the
wounded Mexicans. The total Mexican loss in killed
and wounded can hardly have been less than between
200 and 300. The most reasonable estimate of the
number of Urrea' s troops on the morning of the sur-
render is that of about 1200.
The prisoners were put under a strong guard of
cavalry, marched back to Goliad, and confined in the
old church. The wounded were brought in carts the
next day, and placed in the barracks' hospital. The
church, which was of limestone, gloomy and vaulted,
was not large enough to comfortably contain the pris-
oners. They were huddled together, and given as
rations only four ounces of fresh beef, which they
were obliged to cook as they could. Hospital dress-
ings and surgical instruments were wanting for the
wounded, and the surgeons complained to Colonel
Fannin, who addressed a note to General Urrea call-
ing attention to the terms of the capitulation in re-
gard to the treatment of the wounded. Urrea set out
in pursuit of Ward's party, and they were brought
THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 175
in prisoners a few days afterward. He also dis-
patched a force to Copano, who returned with Major
Miller and eighty-two volunteers from Nashville.
They were captured by Colonel Vara immediately
upon landing, and surrendered without resistance.
They arrived on the 25th, and were confined in the
church, being distinguished from the rest of the pris-
oners by pieces of white cloth tied around their
arms.
Meantime the news had reached Santa Anna at
San Antonio of the capture of Fannin and his force.
He instantly dispatched an order to Lieutenant -Colo-
nel Portilla, the commandant of Goliad, to have the
prisoners all shot. The Mexican Congress the pre-
vious year had passed a law that all foreigners mak-
ing an armed invasion of the country should be dealt
with as pirates.
Colonel Portilla received the order for the execu-
tion of the prisoners on Saturday evening, the 26th.
On that same evening Colonel Fannin and Lieuten-
ant-Colonel Holzinger returned from Copano, where
they had been to see if a vessel could be obtained to
take the men to New Orleans ; but they could find
none in the harbor. Colonel Fannin was very cheer-
ful, and spoke of his wife and child, whom he ex-
pected soon to see. The prisoners were encouraged
by the apparent purpose of the Mexicans to send
them home, and spent the evening in singing, one of
the men who had retained his flute playing "Home,
Sweet Home." Portilla was much agitated and dis-
176 SAM HOUSTON
tressed by the receipt of tlie order from Santa Anna,
and the news soon spread among the Mexican officers,
causing horror and indignation among the more
humane. Urrea was absent in the direction of Vic-
toria, and the news did not reach him until after the
execution had taken place.
In the early morning of Palm Sunday the prison-
ers were awakened and formed into three divisions.
One was led out on the road to San Antonio, one on
the road to San Patricio, and the third on the road to
Copano. One party was informed by the Mexican
officers that it was marching to be sent home, another
that it was being taken out to kill beeves, and the
third that the church was required for Santa Anna's
advancing troops. As they passed through the town
the Mexican women, gazing at them from the doors
of the houses, exclaimed, ''^ Pohrecitos ! ^^ (poor fel-
lows) but the exclamation aroused no suspicion.
They were marched in double file with Mexican sol-
diers on each side of them, and cavalry squads in the
rear. When about half a mile from the town, in dif-
ferent directions, the divisions were halted, and one
line of the Mexican soldiers passed around to the
other side. There was hardly time for the exclama-
tion, "Boys, they are going to kill us!" when the
order was given to fire, and the volleys were poured
in at close range. The lines of prisoners fell in
heaps. Some few, who were unwounded, struggled
to their feet, and dashed toward the timber out upon
the prairie, pursued by the cavalry, and shot at as
THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 111
they ran. The guards stabbed the wounded to death
with their bayonets. Many of the fugitives were
shot down, or stabbed with lances, and some of those
who reached a temporary shelter in the river timber
were afterward intercepted and killed by the cavalry
pickets. Twenty-seven finally escaped by reaching
the woods and swimming the river. They made their
way by long and painful journeys over the prairies,
hiding by day and moving on by night, and, after
incredible sufferings and perilous adventures, reached
places of safety in the settlements, or joined the
Texan army in its advance after the battle of San
Jacinto.
Before daylight in the morning, Dr. Bernard and
Dr. Shackleford, who was a surgeon as well as cap-
tain of the "Eed Eovers," were aroused by Colonel
Garay with a serious and grave countenance, and
directed to go to his headquarters, which were in a
peach orchard, two or three hundred yards from the
church. They found that Captain Miller's company
had also been ordered there, and followed them on,
supposing that their services were required for some
wounded. Drs. Bernard and Shackleford were called
inside of Colonel Garay 's tent, where they found two
men lying completely covered up with blankets, so
that they could not see their faces, and whom they
supposed to be the patients they were called to attend.
While waiting a lad named Martinez came in, and
addressed them in English. They chatted for some
time, but, becoming impatient at the non-appearance
178 SAM HOUSTON
of Colonel Garay, tliey were about to return to tlie
church, when Martinez told them that the directions
for them to remain were positive. Just then they
were startled by a volley of firearms from the direc-
tion of the fort, and Dr. Shackleford exclaimed,
"What's that?" Martinez replied that it was the
soldiers discharging their guns for the purpose of
cleaning them. But yells and cries were heard,
which were recognized as being the voices of Ameri-
cans, and through the openings in the trees some pris-
oners were seen running at their utmost speed with
Mexican soldiers in pursuit of them. Colonel Garay
then entered the tent with a distressed countenance,
and said, "Keep still, gentlemen, you are perfectly
safe. This is not from my orders, nor do I execute
them." He then told them of the orders which had
been received from Santa Anna to shoot the prison-
ers, and that he had taken upon himself the responsi-
bility of saving the surgeons, and the others, who had
been taken without arms in their hands. The men
under the blankets were two who had been employed
by Colonel Garay as carpenters, and whom he had
resolved to save. In the course of five or ten min-
utes as many as Rve distinct volleys were heard in
the tent, and occasional shots followed for more than
an hour. Dr. Shackleford had recruited the "Eed
Rovers " from among his friends and neighbors in
Alabama, and his eldest son and two of his nephews
were in their ranks. Senora Alvarez, the wife of
one of Urrea's officers, having been informed of the
THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 179
approacliing massacre, withdrew a few of the Texan
officers during the night, and concealed them in her
house until the slaughter was over. They joined
Miller's men, and were released after the retreat of
the Mexicans from San Jacinto.
Fannin and Ward were not shot with the rest of
the prisoners, but taken out later. Fannin received
the order for his execution with a calm countenance.
He handed his watch to the officer commanding the
firing party, with the request that it be sent to his
family. He asked that he be not shot in the head,
and that he should be decently buried. It is said
that he was shot in the head, and at any rate his
body was thrown in the heap with the rest of the
prisoners. Ward refused to kneel at the word of
command, and was shot while denouncing the Mexi-
cans as cold-blooded murderers. Fannin was a na-
tive of Georgia, and had come to Texas in 1834.
At the outbreak of the revolution he had enlisted a
company called the "Brazos Volunteers," and joined
Austin's army. He had sided with the Council in
the difficulties between it and Governor Smith, but
the charge that he refused to obey the orders of Gen-
eral Houston to retreat from Goliad is an error. But
his delays in executing them promptly were as fatal
as disobedience. Ward was a native of Georgia,
where he had recruited a company at the call of
Texas for volunteers, and reached the country a few
months previous to his death. The wounded were
butchered in their beds in the hospital. Toward
180 SAM HOUSTON
evening the bodies were piled in heaps, and some
brushwood was piled over them and set on fire. It
was not sufficient to consume them, and the next day
the vultures were seen feeding on the scorched and
mangled remains. When the Texan army advanced
after the battle of San Jacinto to follow General
Filisola's retiring march, it halted at Goliad, and the
bones of the victims of the massacre were gathered
and placed in a grave, at which General Eusk deliv-
ered a feeling address. The number of men killed
in the massacre was 820. Twenty had been pre-
viously killed with Captain King, or butchered in
the church at Refugio. The massacre was as bun-
glingly executed as it was cruel, and included all the
horrors of cowardly treachery and clumsy butchery
more befitting a band of savages than a discij)lined
military. The troops departed for the east the next
day, leaving seventy or eighty men to guard the hos-
pital. Miller's men were allowed at large on their
parole. Drs. Bernard and Shackleford were taken to
San Antonio to attend the Mexican soldiers wounded
in the assault on the Alamo.
Some controversy arose as to whether Fannin had
surrendered under an agreement of capitulation or at
discretion. The copy of the agreement, if there was
one, was never found, and General Urrea declared
that the surrender was without conditions. The pre-
sumptive evidence, however, is strongly in favor of a
capitulation. Fannin and his men were well aware
of the cruelty of the Mexicans, and would have pre-
THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 181
f erred to have died fighting rather than to have trusted
to their mercy, without some definite guarantee that
they would be treated as prisoners of war. All the
circumstances go to show that they laid down their
arms upon such a pledge. There is nothing in the
character of Urrea to vindicate him from the charge
of the falsehood and treachery too common among his
military associates, and his previous butchery of Cap-
tain King's men and the garrison at San Patricio
showed that he was ready to carry out the orders for
treating the invaders from the United States as
pirates. There is a further presumption that there
was a capitulation in the fact that he sent Fannin and
his men to Goliad, instead of executing them on the
spot. There is reason to believe that Urrea informed
Santa Anna that Fannin had surrendered upon
terms, although the latter denied it when a prisoner
at San Jacinto, for the order to shoot the prisoners
was sent not to Urrea, but to Colonel Portilla. The
odium of the butchery rests entirely upon Santa
Anna. He was responsible for the decree of the
Mexican Congress that invaders should be treated as
outlaws, for the Congress was entirely his creature.
He was undoubtedly deeply enraged at the slaughter
of his troops by the defenders of the Alamo, and per-
haps counted on striking terror into the Texan colo-
nists by an example of merciless severity. If so, he
was mistaken in the character of the men he had to
deal with. They were simply aroused to a pitch of
fury by his cruelty, and the cry of "Kemember La
182 SAM HOUSTON
BaMa! " nerved the arms tliat struck down liis fleeing
soldiers at San Jacinto. Like all suck deeds, it was
a blunder as well as a crime. Wken lie received tke
information that Miller and his company had been
spared, he directed the preparation of an order for
their execution, but Captain Savageiro, the bearer of
the dispatch from Goliad, manfully remonstrated.
He was reprimanded by Santa Anna, but the order
was withdrawn to permit an investigation into the
circumstances of the capture. To the credit of most
of the Mexican officers, they were shocked at Santa
Anna's barbarity, and some of them had the courage
to express their shame and indignation.
Santa Anna was confirmed in his belief that the
war was practically over by the capture of the gar-
rison of Goliad. He divided his troops into three
columns to complete the work of occupying the coun-
try. The first, under General Gaona, was to proceed
by a northerly route to Nacogdoches. The second,
under General Sesma, was to advance upon San
Felipe, and thence by way of Harrisburg to the
coast at Anahuac. The third, under General Urrea,
was to sweep the country between Goliad and the
mouth of the Brazos, and drive out all the colonists
on the southern border. The orders to these com-
manders were to shoot all prisoners. He ordered a
brigade of cavalry, with a portion of the artillery and
military stores, to be ready to return to San Luis
Potosi, and prepared to set out for Tampico himself
by sea from Copano or Matagorda. But upon the
THE MASSACRE OF GOLIAD 183
remonstrances of General Filisola and Colonel Al-
monte, that the Texans were by no means yet sub-
dued, and tbe receipt of a dispatch from General
Sesma that a force of 1200 had gathered to dispute
the passage of the Colorado, Santa Anna changed his
mind, countermanded the order for the withdrawal of
the troops to Mexico, and set out with General Fili-
sola, under an escort of cavalry, to join the column
under General Sesma.
CHAPTER XI
SAN JACINTO
Houston remained at Burnham's Crossing for two
days, until all the fugitives and their families had
been passed over, and then crossed to the east bank
of the Colorado. He moved down to a place known
as Beason's Crossing, where he remained until the
26th. The artillery which he expected did not ar-
rive, and he complained that his orders for its trans-
mission from the mouth of the Brazos had been coun-
termanded by the government. The news of the fall
of the Alamo and the retreat of Houston, combined
with the withdrawal of the government to Harrisburg,
created a thorough panic among the settlers. It was
one of those alarms which are liable to seize any com-
munity on the receipt of sudden and terrifying news.
The deserters from the army spread the panic from
house to house with wild exaggerations as to the near-
ness and magnitude of the Mexican forces. Families
packed their goods into wagons and started in frantic
haste toward the eastern settlements, and men who
should have joined the army took the backward in-
stead of the forward trails. The flight and panic
which spread through Texas were afterward known
as "The Runaway Scrape." Nevertheless, the colo-
SAN JACINTO 185
nists rallied to some extent to join Houston's army.
He declared, subsequently, that at no time had he
over 700 men; but well-informed authorities assert
that before he fell back from the Colorado his forces
numbered between 1200 and 1400. His dispatches
to the government, while urgently calling upon the
people to rally to his standard, indicated a purpose to
fight on the line of the Colorado. He said, "Fifteen
hundred men can defeat all the troops Santa Anna
can send to the Colorado. Let all the men east of
the Trinity rush to us. Let all the disposable forces
of Texas fly to arms. Rouse the Redlanders to bat-
tle." He reported his men as in fine spirits, under
good discipline, and eager to engage the enemy. On
the 19th, Generals Sesma and WoU arrived with a
Mexican force, estimated at between 500 and 600, and
took a position on the west bank of the Colorado
about two miles above Beason's Crossing, under or-
ders from Santa Anna not to cross the river unless
the enemy had retired. Houston sent up a small
force to dispute Sesma 's crossing, and some skirmish-
ing took place, but the Mexicans made no attempt to
cross. He sent out spies to ascertain the number of
Sesma' s forces, and, according to his dispatches, it
was correctly reported to him. He could have fallen
upon and destroyed Sesma' s force, but he waited for
his artillery and for news of the movements of the
troops under Fannin.
On the 25th, a fugitive named Peter Kerr arrived
in camp with the news of the capture of Fannin's
186 SAM HOUSTON
force. Houston, afraid of the effect of the news
upon the spirits of his men, fell into one of his
feigned rages, declared Kerr to be a traitor and a
spy, and ordered him to be put under guard for exe-
cution the next morning. Of course he did not carry
out his threat. He examined him privately at night,
and was satisfied of the truth of the report. The
destruction of Fannin's force left Urrea free either to
form a junction with Sesma or to pass to Houston's
rear. It is probable that Houston came to the con-
clusion, after the news of the defeat of Fannin, that
an attack upon Sesma would lead to the concentration
of the entire Mexican army upon the Colorado, which
he would be unable to meet with a chance of success,
while a defeat and the destruction of its only army
would be fatal to the cause of Texas. It would be
wiser to induce the enemy to divide their forces, and
scatter through the country, so that they could be
struck in detail. He made up his mind to fall back
to the Brazos. He kept his own counsel, and took
no one into his confidence except Colonel Hockley,
his chief -of -staff. He began his retreat on the even-
ing of the 26th, and fell back about five miles on his
first march. The movement caused great dissatisfac-
tion and some insubordination among the members of
his little army. They wanted to fight, and, like all
» volunteers, could see nothing in a retreat but evi-
1 deuce of timidity on the part of the commander. It
^ is the greatest test of the power and personal influ-
ence of a commander to keep a force of undisciplined
SAN JACINTO 187
soldiery together and in heart on a retrograde move-
ment. Furloughs were given to some to remove their
families from the country between the Colorado and
the Brazos, and others departed without leave, so
that the force was reduced to 750 men. Fiery and
insubordinate spirits advocated revolt, and even the
deposition of the commander. But Houston was in-
defatigable, and never was his power over men more
thoroughly demonstrated than in keeping the confi-
dence and control of the lawless, passionate, and
undisciplined elements that composed his retreating
force. He was the first in the morning to rally the
troops and start the wagons, and by jest and good
humor, by objurgation and appeal, pushed the march
over every obstacle, and kept the men in hearty spir-
its. He put his own shoulder to the bemired wheels,
and his persuasive presence was everywhere up and
down the line. It was a very trying time for
Houston. He wrote to Rusk, the Secretary of War,
after reaching the Brazos : "I hope I can keep them
together. I have thus far succeeded beyond my
hopes. I will do the best I can, but be assured the
fame of Jackson could never compensate me for my
anxiety and mental pain." The weather was very
depressing. Continued storms and heavy rains beat
down upon the unsheltered troops, and tried even
their seasoned hardihood. The streams were swollen
beyond their banks, and the prairie, which at that
season of the year was usually an elastic carpet of
green grass and blooming flowers, was a dismal and
188 SAM HOUSTON
miry morass in which the wagon wheels sank up to
their hubs. But the line struggled on, sweeping up
the families along its line of march, and sending out
scouting parties to bring away the inhabitants of the
outlying cabins. There were many painful scenes of
distress and suffering. While the army was crossing
the Colorado, two women were seen sitting on a log
near the bank. The husband of one of them had
been killed at the Alamo, and she was utterly aban-
doned and destitute. Houston gave her fifty dollars
out of the two hundred which was all that he had for
any purpose. It is an evidence of the vigorous char-
acter of the pioneer settlers, that she afterward wrote
him that she had invested the money in cattle, and
had made herself comfortable and independent. The
army was increased during its march by three com-
panies of 130 men, who had been brought from the
mouth of the Brazos by Major John Forbes. It
reached San Felipe, on the west bank of the Brazos,
on the 28th.
From this point Houston determined to march up
the river. It is difficult to understand why he took
this course, unless, as he afterward said, he intended
to fall on the enemy by surprise, when they arrived
at San Felipe. The movement caused more insubor-
dination in the ranks of the army. Captain Moreley
Baker, with his company of 120 men, insisted on re-
maining to defend the crossing at San Felipe, and
Captain Wylie Martin, with his, in going below to
guard the ferry at Fort Bend. These withdrawals
SAN JACINTO 189
left Houston with only 520 men. He marclied up
the river to Mill Creek, and then to Groce's Ferry,
where he found the steamer Yellowstone, partially
loaded with cotton. The steamer was seized by his
order, and held to take the troops across the river if
necessary. The army was encamped in the Brazos
bottom. Heavy rains continued to fall, and the en-
campment was entirely surrounded by water. The
valley of the Brazos became a running torrent, and
any scheme to attack the Mexicans on their arrival at
San Felipe was out of the question. The army re-
mained at its camp, shelterless and with no food ex-
cept the beeves they could kill, until April 12. In
the mean time. President Burnett had issued a pro-
clamation calling upon the people to rally to the
army, and endeavored to allay the panic. But a
universal alarm had seized upon the peoj^le. The
fugitives from the region west of the Brazos, stream-
ing across the country, spread the contagion of fear
from settlement to settlement clear to the border of
Louisiana. Samuel P. Carson, the Secretary of
State, wrote from Liberty to President Burnett:
"Never, until I reached the Trinity, have I de-
sponded, I will not say despaired. If Houston has
retreated or been whipped, nothing can save the peo-
ple from themselves; their own conduct has brought
this calamity upon them." On the 29th, Captain
Baker burned the town of San Felipe on the mistaken
supposition that the enemy were approaching, but it
proved to be only a herd of cattle. On April 2,
190 SAM HOUSTON
Vice-President Zavala joined Houston, and a com-
pany of eighty men from Eastern Texas also arrived.
On the 4th, Secretary of War Kusk came to give his
counsel and assistance.
General Sesma, having been reinforced by the
arrival of the troops under General Tolsa so that his
force amounted to 1400 men, crossed the swollen
Colorado with great difficulty on rafts. Santa Anna
did what it was expected he would, and ordered a
concentration of his columns. Generals Urrea and
Gaona were ordered to move upon San Eelipe to
form a junction with Sesma. Santa Anna himself
hastened forward to take command of Sesma' s col-
umn. He arrived with escort at San Felipe April 7.
Finding that Houston had vanished in the woods, he
countermanded Urrea' s advance, and directed him to
proceed to Matagorda. In the mean time. General
Gaona had lost his way in marching from Bastrop,
and did not arrive at San Felipe until April 17.
Santa Anna evidently believed that the Texan army
had fallen back out of his path, and that all he need
to do to finish the war was to push on and capture
the members of the government at Harrisburg. He
was probably also informed of the flight and panic of
the people. Baker's small force remained to dispute
the passage at San Felipe, and after some exchange
of shots across the river, Santa Anna moved with
a portion of his force down to Fort Bend. All
the boats had been removed from the west bank of
the river, but Colonel Almonte, hailing in English a
SAN JACINTO 191
negro ferryman on tlie east bank, persuaded him to
bring over his boat, which was seized. Captain
Martin's force was kept occupied at the upper ferry
by a demonstration while the main body of the Mexi-
cans crossed at the lower. The crossing was effected
on the 13th, and on the afternoon of the 14th, Santa
Anna pushed on with a column of about 700 men
and one cannon, with the hope of surprising Harris-
burg. He left Sesma with the remainder of the
troops and the baggage, and announced that he would
be back in three days. He forced his troops through
the heavy timber of the Brazos bottom and across the
miry prairie with impatient energy, and arrived in
the vicinity of Harrisburg at eleven o'clock on the
night of the 15th. He entered the town on foot with
sixteen men, and found it deserted by all except three
printers in the "Telegraph" office. He made them
prisoners, and learned that the members of the gov-
ernment had left that morning for Galveston Island.
He halted until the afternoon of the next day for the
stragglers to come in, and, having set fire to the
buildings of Harrisburg, pushed on for New Wash-
ington on the border of the bay, where he hoped to
catch the fugitive members of the government be-
fore they could make their escape to Galveston. An
advance guard of cavalry under Colonel Almonte
nearly captured President Burnett, who had delayed
to remove his family from his residence in the neigh-
borhood. He had just pushed off in a small sailing
vessel as they arrived, and stood exposed to their fire
192 SAM HOUSTON
for some minutes, but fortunately escaped unharmed.
Santa Anna arrived at New Washington on the 18th,
and sent orders to General Cos, who was with Ses-
ma's force, to join him by forced marches with 500
men. He intended to proceed to Anahuac, and from
thence to Galveston.
The news that the Mexican advance had reached
the Brazos was communicated to Houston by his
scouts. On April 7, he issued an order to the army
saying that "the moment we have waited for with
anxiety and interest is fast aj)proaching. The vic-
tims of the Alamo and the masses of those who were
murdered at Goliad call for cool, deliberate ven-
geance. The army will be in condition for action at
a moment's warning." On the 11th, two six-pounder
guns, named "The Twin Sisters," which had been
sent by the citizens of Cincinnati, arrived from Har-
risburg. There was no ordnance with them, and
horseshoes and old pieces of iron were cut up and
tied in bags for canister. On the 12th, Houston be-
came convinced that Santa Anna had crossed the
Brazos, and determined to follow him. The army
was taken over on the Yellowstone, and encamped at
Groce's plantation, where it was joined by Baker's
and Martin's companies. Baker and Martin were
in a refractory temper. They asked if there was to
be any fighting, and were informed by Houston that
there would be. The companies at first refused to
fall into line, and Martin was so insubordinate that
he was sent to the Trinity to keep the Indians quiet,
SAN JACINTO 193
if tliey should prove turbulent, and protect the fam-
ilies of the settlers. On the 14th, the army com-
menced its march to the south. The roads were in
a terrible condition, the streams swollen and the prai-
ries quagmired. Houston pulled off his coat, and
put his shoulder to the wheels of the cannon. On
the 18th, the army reached Buffalo Bayou, opposite
the ruins of Harrisburg. Deaf Smith and Karnes,
who had been sent out as spies, returned with a pris-
oner bearing a buckskin bag full of dispatches to
Santa Anna from General Filisola and the City of
Mexico. There was no longer any doubt that the
Mexican commander-in-chief was with the force be-
low them. Houston and Rusk had a brief confer-
ence. "We need not talk,'' said Houston. "You
think we ought to fight, and I think so, too." Up to
that time Houston had kept his own counsel, and a
good many of the officers and men believed that they
would take the Liberty road toward the Trinity. He
then called them together and addressed them. His
brief words were: "The army will cross, and we will
meet the enemy. Some of us may be killed, and
must be killed. But, soldiers, remember the Alamo,
the Alamo, the Alamo!" Said Major Somerville,
"After that speech there will be damned few prison-
ers taken, that I know." Colonel Rusk began an
eloquent speech, but stopped in the middle of it, say-
ing, "I have done," as if he realized that it was use-
less to inspire men for a battle which they were
eagerly longing for. The dogged courage which had
194 SAM HOUSTON
held up the retreat now flamed into the fierce energy
and lust for victory and vengeance. Buffalo Bayou
is a narrow but deep stream, and was then running
bank-full. Eafts were built of timber and rails, and
were pulled across on a rope stretched from tree to
tree, the horses swimming. Houston stood on the
farther bank, and Eusk on the other, until the men
were across. It was evening when the crossing was
finished, but the troops pushed on, until they became
so utterly exhausted that they were stumbling against
each other in the ranks and falling down. They were
given a rest for two hours, and again resumed their
march, which they kept up until morning. At sun-
rise on the morning of the 20th they were halted.
They had shot ^me wandering cattle, and were cook-
ing their breaii: .iSt, when an alarm was given that the
scouts had encountered the enemy. Leaving their
half -cooked meat on the sticks, they hastened forward
to Lynch' s Ferry at the junction of Buffalo Bayou
and the San Jacinto River, where it was expected that
Santa Anna would cross on his way to Anahuac. No
enemy was in sight, but they found a flat-boat loaded
with provisions for Santa Anna's army, which they
seized. They then fell back about half a mile to a
grove on the banks of the bayou. The grove was of
heavy live oaks, hung with the weeping Spanish
moss, and free from underbrush. Before it was a
stretch of gently rolling prairie, some two miles in
extent. Upon the farther edge of the prairie were
the marshes of the. San Jacinto River, which swept
SAN JACINTO 195
around it to the southward, and whose timber
bounded the horizon. In front were two small
islands, or "motts" of timber, a few hundred yards
out on the prairie. In the rear were the turbid wa-
ters of the bayou, there broadened to a stream of
considerable width. The two cannon were planted
on the edge of the grove, and the men encamped
within its shelter. The grass on the prairie had al-
ready grown up tall, and the vegetation was in the
full leaf and luxuriance of the early Texas summer.
On the morning of the 20th, Santa Anna had
burnt the warehouses of New Washington and a ves-
sel lying at the wharf, and his troops were in line for
the march to Lynch 's Ferry, when Captain Barragan,
who had been sent out on a scout t previous day,
dashed up at full speed, and annou. jed that Hous-
ton's army was close at hand, and had captured and
dispatched some of the stragglers. At the entrance
to New Washington there was a lane some half mile
in length, which was filled with the baggage mules
and the troops who had them in charge. When Santa
Anna, who had not left the town, received the report
of Captain Barragan, he dashed off at full speed
through the lane, thrusting aside and knocking down
the men and animals, and shouting at the top of his
voice, "The enemy are coming! The enemy are com-
ing! " This mad conduct excited and frightened the
troops, and for some time there was an absolute con-
fusion, the troops being on the verge of scattering in
flight. Finally, they were formed in line on the
196 SAM HOUSTON
prairie beyond tlie lane, and a scouting party was
sent out. No enemy was in sight, and the troops
were formed into ranks and advanced. About two
o'clock in the afternoon Houston's pickets were dis-
covered on the edge of the grove, and Santa Anna
again formed his troops in line of battle. He brought
up his cannon, and fired a few shots, which did no
execution, except in wounding Colonel J. C. Neill, in
command of the Texan artillery. The Mexican skir-
mish line of infantry advanced, but was received
with a fire which drove it back in haste amid the wild
shouts of the Texans. After some harmless ex-
changes by the artillery, Santa Anna drew off, and
established his camp with very poor judgment. Its
front was open to the prairie without defense, and in
its rear were the deep marshes of the San Jacinto
River. In fact, Santa Anna appears to have lost
control of his faculties since the surprise of the
morning and the realization that he had cut himself
off from the main body of his troops. His officers
perceived and spoke of the weak situation of the
camp, but no one dared to remonstrate with him in
his haK-frantic state of mind. Late in the afternoon
a slight skirmish took place. Colonel Sherman ob-
tained permission to take out the Texan cavalry to
reconnoitre, and endeavored to bring on a general
engagement. He encountered the Mexican cavalry,
and some shots were exchanged by which two Texans
were wounded, one of them mortally. Some infantry
was sent to his assistance, but Houston refused to
SAN JACINTO 197
advance for a battle, and the Texans retired. In
this skirmish Mirabeau B. Lamar, afterward Presi-
dent of the Republic, distinguished himself. He had
joined the army at Grroce's, having walked nearly all
the way from Yelasco, and was serving as a private
in the cavalry. During the skirmish a young man
named Walter P. Lane was cut off and was in dan-
ger of being captured or killed. Lamar dashed for-
ward, killed one Mexican, upset another, and dis-
armed a third, and brought Lane in safe. For this
dashing feat he was given the command of the cav-
alry the next day. The Texans rested under double
guard during the night, but there was nothing to
break the silence except the voices of the night birds.
The morning sun of April 21 rose bright and
cloudless. Santa Anna fortified his camp to a slight
extent by piling up a barricade of boxes, baggage,
and pack-saddles in front of his lines with an opening
in the centre for his cannon. Boughs of trees were
also cut and piled up as a sort of abatis. The Tex-
ans cooked their breakfast and waited for the orders
of their commander. Houston was awake during the
night, but slept for two hours in the morning with
his head on a coil of rope used in dragging the can-
non. At nine o'clock a body of Mexican troops were
seen advancing over the prairie from the north. It
was General Cos with a force of 500 men from Ses-
ma's division. He had hastened by forced marches
on the receipt of Santa Anna's orders to join him,
and his men arrived so utterly exhausted that they
198 SAM HOUSTON
threw themselves down as soon as they had stacked
arms. Houston said that they were not new men,
but merely a body of the old ones, which had been
marched around behind a rise in the prairie to give
the impression of a reinforcement. But it is doubt-
ful if his explanation deceived anybody, or if the
Texans were at all discouraged by the addition to
the enemy's forces. In the morning Houston had
directed Major Forbes to provide a couple of axes,
and summoned Deaf Smith. He ordered him to
select a trustworthy companion, and hold himself in
readiness for special service, and not to leave the
camp. Smith selected Denmore Reeves, a fellow-
scout, as his companion, and waited for his orders.
Houston made no sign of opening the engagements,
and the men became impatient. About noon some
of the officers waited upon him, and asked for a coun-
cil of war. Houston consented. The council con-
sisted of Colonels Burleson and Sherman, Lieuten-
ant-Colonels Millard and Bennett, Major Wells,
Secretary Rusk, and the commander-in-chief. The
question was put, " Shall we attack the enemy in his
position, or await his attack in ours?" The two
junior officers were in favor of attack. The four
seniors and Secretary Rusk were in favor of awaiting
the attack of the enemy. Rusk said that "to attack
veteran troops with raw militia was a thing unheard
of; to charge upon the enemy without bayonets in
the open prairie had never been known ; our position
is strong; in it we can whip all Mexico." Houston
SAN JACINTO 199
expressed no opinion, and dismissed the council.
After the council had been dismissed Houston called
Deaf Smith and his companion, and ordered them to
take the axes and cut down Vince's bridge. The
bridge was over Vince's Bayou, a stream running
into Buffalo Bayou to the north about eight miles
above the camp, and over which both armies had
passed on their way into the cul de sac. Its destruc-
tion cut off the only means of retreat for either army,
and made the coming battle a struggle for life or
death. As Smith and his companion started with
the axes over their saddle-bows, Houston told them
that they must hurry if they would be back in time
for what was about to take place. Smith smiled and
said, "This looks a good deal like a fight, general."
At haK past three o'clock Houston gave orders for
the troops to be formed in line of battle. The only
music which the Texan army had was a solitary drum
and fife. As the troops were forming they struck up
the air, "Will you come to the bower? " The lines
were drawn up behind the mott of timber in front
of the camp. Colonel Burleson occupied the centre
with the first regiment. Colonel Sherman, with the
second regiment, formed the left wing. The two
pieces of artillery, under the command of Colonel
Hockley, were stationed on the right of the first
regiment, supported by four companies of infantry
under command of Lieutenant-Colonel Millard. The
squadron of cavalry, sixty-eight in number, under
command of Colonel Lamar, completed the line on
200 SAM HOUSTON
the right. Houston was with the centre, Rusk with
the left. At four o'clock the order of "Forward! "
was given. The afternoon sun was shining full in
their eyes, lighting up the strong, eager faces and
the stained and ragged garments, as the line moved
forward with trailed arms. As they approached the
enemy's camp their pace was quickened to a run,
Houston dashing up and down behind the lines, wav-
ing his old white hat, and shouting, "G — d d — n
you, hold your fire!" When within about sixty
yards of the barricade Deaf Smith dashed up on his
horse, flecked with foam, and yelled, "You must
fight for your lives! Vince's bridge has been cut
down!" Where the guns were within point-blank
distance they were wheeled and fired, smashing into
the barricade. The Texans halted at close range,
and delivered a volley, and then dashed forward with
terrific yells, "Remember the Alamo! Remember
La Baliia!" The Mexicans were taken entirly by
surj)rise. Santa Anna had given up all idea of ex-
pecting a battle that day, and was enjoying his siesta
in his tent. Many of the other officers and men
were also stretched out in a doze. Some of the men
were cooking, and others were in the woods cutting
boughs for shelter. The lines were composed of
musket stacks. The cavalrymen were riding bare-
back to and from water. When the Texan line was
seen approaching there was the greatest alarm and
confusion. General Castrillon shouted on one side,
and Colonel Almonte was giving orders on the other.
SAN JACINTO 201
Some of the officers cried out to the men to fire, and
others to lie down and avoid the shots. Santa Anna
ran out of his tent and yelled to the men to lie down.
iGeneral Castrillon endeavored to rally some men to
work the gun, but the cannoneer was shot down, and
the men ran back, as they saw the charging line.
General Castrillon himself soon fell dead, struck with
a rifle ball. The Mexicans had barely time to seize
their muskets, and give a scattering volley at the
charging line, when it burst over the feeble barricade
upon the frightened and disorganized crowd. The
Texans clubbed their rifles or drew their bowie
knives, and plunged into the mass. Some of the
Mexicans tried to use their bayonets, but the brawny
arms of the Texans struck them down, and, after a
quarter of an hour of confused and desperate struggle,
the Mexican army was in full flight over the prairie
or running into the morass, pursued by the shouting
and yelling Texans. Santa Anna, after running
frantically about, wringing his hands, sprang upon a
splendid black stallion furnished by one of his aids,
and led the flight toward Yince's bridge. The Mexi-
cans who fled into the morass were bogged in the
quagmire, and shot down as they struggled. Some
of them were intercepted by a deep and muddy bayou
at the rear of the right of their camp, and were killed
on its banks or shot as they endeavored to flounder
across. Those who fled over the prairie were pur-
sued by fleeter footsteps than their own, and struck
down or shot. The cavalry pursued those who fled
202 SAM HOUSTON
on horseback toward Vince's bridge. They found it
destroyed, and only a few of them were able to cross
the steep banks of the bayou. The Mexican soldiers,
appalled by the fury of slaughter, threw up their
hands and cried, "Me no Alamo! Me no Alamo!"
The Texans executed a full vengeance. Six hundred
and thirty were killed and 208 wounded out of a total
of between 1300 and 1400 Mexicans. Colonel Al-
monte managed to rally 300 or 400 men beyond the
camp, and make a formal surrender. The rest threw
down their arms as they ran, and were herded into
the Texan camp after the slaughter. Houston re-
ceived a ball in his ankle which shattered the bone,
and his horse was shot in several places as he followed
the charging line on the breastworks. He remained
upon the field, however, until the Mexican army was
in full flight. While riding over the prairie endeav-
oring to stop the slaughter, his horse sank under him,
and he fell to the ground. He turned over the com-
mand to Colonel Rusk, and was taken back to the
camp. Deaf Smith charged on horseback ahead of
the infantry. When close to the breastwork his
horse stumbled and threw him over his head. Smith
lost his sword in his fall, and drew his pistol to kill a
Mexican soldier who was advancing to stab him with
his bayonet, but the cap snapped. He threw his
pistol at the Mexican, and staggered him back. He
then wrenched the soldier's musket from his hands
and defended himself until the infantry came up.
When darkness fell the prisoners were put under
SAN JACINTO 203
guard. Bright fires were lit, and the Texans gave
themselves up to wild rejoicings. They yelled and
pranced around the prisoners, shouting to every offi-
cer, "Santa Anna? Santa Anna?"" until some of
them pulled off their shoulder-straps to escape the
annoyance. There was a grand illumination of can-
dles, which the Texans had procured from the Mexi-
can baggage, and carried about in their hands. The
dark arches of the grove echoed with the wild tumult
until nearly morning. The prisoners, however, were
not maltreated, but only made subject to a fire of
chaff in a language which they did not understand.
It was merely the effervescence of vigorous animal
spirits working off the intoxication of victory.
The number of Texans in the battle which achieved
their independence was 743. Of these only six were
killed in the engagement, and twenty-five were
wounded, of whom two afterward died. The losses
were almost all in the scattering volley fired against
them before they crossed the breastwork. After that
the Mexicans were helplessly slaughtered. The
Mexican loss was 630 killed, 208 wounded, and 730
prisoners. As an illustration of the fury of the
Texan blows, many skulls have been picked up on
the battle-field which showed where they had been
struck in the back with bowie knives and sprayed, as
a pane of glass is sprayed by a blow. A large quan-
tity of arms, baggage, and camp equipage fell into
the hands of the victors, including 900 English mus-
kets, 300 sabres, and 200 pistols. There were 300
204 SAM HOUSTON
mules and 100 horses, clothing, tents, and camp
equipage. Among the spoils was the sum of 112,000
in silver. The soldiers voted that ^12000 of this
should be devoted to the support of the navy. The
rest was distributed among them, making 17.50 each,
which was all the money they received during the
campaign.
The next day parties were sent out to bury the
dead Mexican soldiers, in whose bodies decomposition
set in so rapidly as to cause the more superstitious
among the prisoners to attribute their disaster to a
supernatural visitation. The plunder of the Mexican
camp was brought in, and the Texans amused them-
selves by decorating the mules with officers' sashes
and ribbons, and in all kinds of rude horse-play. In
the mean time, parties were scouring the country in
search of Santa Anna and other fugitives. Houston
had prophesied that Santa Anna would be found
making his retreat on all fours, and in the dress of a
common soldier. About two o'clock a little man was
brought in behind a soldier on horseback. His rest-
less eyes and pallid countenance indicated that he
was suffering from great fear. He was dressed in
linen trousers, a blue cotton jacket, a cap, and red
worsted slippers. The Mexican soldiers, on seeing
him, exclaimed, "El Presidente! El General Santa
Anna!"
When Santa Anna, in his flight from the battle-
field, came to Yince's Bayou and found the bridge de-
stroyed, he plunged in with his horse. The horse was
SAN JACINTO 205
mired, and was unable to extricate himself. Santa
Anna left him, swam across the stream, climbed the
opposite bank, and continued his flight on foot. He
found some old clothes in an abandoned house, and
exchanged his gilded uniform for them. The next
day he was discovered by James T. Sylvester and a
party of four, who were scouting the country. He
was standing on the edge of a ravine, and when he
saw the party riding toward him he dropped on all
fours in the grass, and was with difficulty compelled
to rise. He claimed to be a private soldier, but his
fine linen and jeweled studs betrayed him to be an
officer. He then said that he was an aid-de-camp to
Santa Anna. As the party started to return to camp
he complained that his feet were so sore that he could
not walk, and he was taken behind one of the men on
horseback.
Santa Anna was brought into the presence of
Houston, who was lying on his pallet in a doze, hav-
ing been kept awake during the night from the pain
of his wound. Houston was not much more distin-
guished in dress than his captive. His dandyism had
given way to the exigencies of the campaign, and
he wore an old black coat, a black velvet vest, a
pair of snuff-colored pantaloons, and dilapidated
boots. His only badge of authority during the cam-
paign was a sword with a plated scabbard, which he
tied to his belt with buckskin thongs. Santa Anna
stepped forward, and said, with an impressive bow,
"I am General Antonio Lopez de Santa Anna, Pres-
206 SAM HOUSTON
ident of the Mexican Kepublic, and I claim to be a
prisoner of war at your disposal." Houston waved
his hand for him to be seated on an ammunition box,
and Colonel Almonte was sent for to act as inter-
preter. While waiting his arrival, Santa Anna
pressed his hands to his sides as if in pain or fear,
and his restless black eyes glanced around the camp.
When Almonte came up Santa Anna complained of
pain, and asked for a piece of opium. A piece of
about five grains was given him, and he regained
something of his composure. His first words were,
"That man may consider himself born to no common
destiny who has conquered the Napoleon of the West.
It now remains for him to be generous to the van-
quished." Houston replied, "You should have re-
membered that at the Alamo." Santa Anna en-
deavored to excuse himself for the slaughter of the
garrison of the Alamo, on the ground that he was
acting under the orders of the government of Mexico
to treat all prisoners taken in arms as pirates, but
was reminded that he was himself the government of
Mexico. He declared that he was not aware that
Fannin had surrendered under terms of capitulation,
and threatened that he would have Urrea executed
for deceiving him, if he ever regained power. Santa
Anna desired to treat with Houston for terms of
peace and his release, but Houston informed him that
he had no authority, and that the matter must be
referred to the government of Texas. Santa Anna
then proposed an armistice, which was agreed to.
SAN JACINTO 207
He wrote an order to General Filisola for him to
retire to Bexar and to notify General Gaona to do
the same. General Urrea was to be directed to retire
to Guadalupe Victoria, and the prisoners at Goliad,
captured at Copano, were to be released. As soon
as the dispatches were written, they were sent off by
Deaf Smith. Houston then sent for Santa Anna's
tent, which he had erected near him, and delivered
to him his private baggage untouched. There was
considerable excitement among the Texan soldiers
when it was known that Santa Anna was a prisoner.
Some of the more violent wanted to kill him on the
spot, and Houston ordered a guard around his tent
for its protection.
The news of Santa Anna's defeat reached General
Filisola on the afternoon of the 22d, from the mouth
of an officer who had succeeded in crossing Vince's
Bayou on horseback. It was at first disbelieved, but
other fugitives came in and confirmed it. General
Gaona had previously joined Filisola with his col-
umn, and a portion of his troops had crossed the
Brazos on their way to Nacogdoches. They were
recalled, and dispatches were sent to General Urrea at
Matagorda, and to Colonel Salas at Columbia, to join
Filisola as soon as possible. Filisola was informed
that the victorious Texan army numbered 1200 or
1500 men, and decided to fall back to a more secure
position. He retreated to a place on the road to
Victoria, and on the 26th was joined by General
Urrea. The commanders in consultation decided to
208 SAM HOUSTON
retire beyond the Colorado, and await instructions
and reinforcements from the Mexican authorities.
Their troops numbered about 2500 men, but they
were worn out and discouraged, and destitute of sup-
plies. On the 27th, Deaf Smith reached the Mexican
army with Santa Anna's dispatches, and, although
the retreat had already been decided upon, it was
agreed to have it considered as under Santa Anna's
orders. General Woll was sent to Houston's camp
with stipulations on the part of Filisola that he
should be allowed to supply himself with cattle for
provisions on his retreat, and with secret instructions
to inform himself of the condition and strength of the
Texan force. WoU's latter purpose was suspected,
and he was detained as a prisoner. General Cos had
also been captured on the 24th, as he was endeavor-
ing to make his way through the Brazos bottom.
The Mexican troops continued their retreat with great
difficulty, the roads being in a horrible condition, and
the men and animals utterly worn out. They reached
Victoria May 7, where they halted.
The news of the victory of San Jacinto did not
reach the government on Galveston Island until
April 27. It caused great rejoicing, and President
Burnett and his Cabinet, who had been making prep-
arations for a farther flight, if necessary, took pas-
sage for Houston's camp. There negotiations were
opened with Santa Anna. He was ready to promise
anything to secure his liberty. Houston addressed a
note to Rusk suggesting the conditions of a treaty to
SUGGESTIONS FOR A TREATY 209
be made with him. They were the recognition of the
independence of Texas by Mexico; the establislunent
of the Rio Grande as the boundary between the two
countries ; indemnity for all losses sustained by Texas
during the war; Santa Anna and other officers to be
retained as hostages until the ratification of the terms
of the treaty by the Mexican government; release of
the Texan prisoners and Mexican citizens favorable
to the cause of Texas who had been arrested, and
the restoration of their property; immediate with-
drawal of the Mexican troops from the territory of
Texas, and the cessation of hostilities by sea and
land; a guarantee for the surrender of all Mexican
prisoners as soon as the terms of the treaty were com-
plied with. It was also suggested that agents be
appointed to the United States to secure the media-
tion of that country between Texas and Mexico. A
minority of the Cabinet, headed by Lamar, who had
been appointed Secretary of War, in place of Rusk,
who had been made a brigadier-general and given
command of the army, opposed any negotiations with
Santa Anna. They argued that as a prisoner no
agreement that he might make would be binding
upon the government of Mexico, and that as he had
violated the laws of war of civilized nations by his
cruelty, he should be brought to trial and punished
with death.
Houston, being incapacitated by his wound from
active service, addressed a farewell order to the
army : —
210 SAM HOUSTON
Headquarters, San Jacinto, May 5, 1836.
CoMEADES, — Circumstances connected with the
battle of the 21st render our separation for the pres-
ent unavoidable. I need not express to you the many-
painful sensations which that separation inflicts upon
me. I am solaced, however, by the hope that we
shall soon be reunited in the cause of liberty. Brig-
adier-General Rusk is appointed to command the
army for the present. I confide in his valor, his
patriotism, his wisdom. His conduct in the battle of
San Jacinto was sufficient to secure your confidence
and regard.
The enemy, although retreating, are still within
the limits of Texas ; their situation being known to
you, you cannot be taken by surprise. Discipline
and subordination will render you invincible. Your
valor and heroism have proved you unrivaled. Let
not contempt for the enemy throw you off your guard.
Vigilance is the first duty of the soldier, and glory
the proudest reward of his toils.
You have patiently endured privations, hardships,
and difficulties unappalled ; you have encountered two
to one of the enemy against you, and borne yourselves
in the onset and conflict of battle in a manner un-
known in the annals of modern warfare. While an
enemy to independence remains in Texas your work
is incomplete ; but when liberty is firmly established
by your patience and your valor, it will be fame
enough to say, "I was a member of the army of San
Jacinto."
TREATY SIGNED " 211
In taking leave of my brave comrades in arms, I
cannot suppress the expression of that pride which
I so justly feel in having had the honor to command
them in person, nor will I withhold the tribute of my
warmest admiration and gratitude for the promptness
with which my orders were executed, and union
maintained through the army. At parting my heart
embraces you with gratitude and affection.
Sam Houston, Commander-in- Chief,
He was taken on his cot on board the steamer Yel-
lowstone May 7, and in company with President Bur-
nett and the Cabinet, Santa Anna and his staff, and
the rest of the prisoners, left for Galveston Island.
Here Houston was transferred to the little schooner
Flora, and sailed for New Orleans for medical treat-
ment. The government and Santa Anna went to
Yelasco, leaving the Mexican soldiers herded in a
camp on the island. At Velasco a treaty was signed,
May 14, embodying the conditions suggested by
Houston. The portion in relation to the cessation
of hostilities, the surrender of prisoners, and the
agreement for indemnities was public, but that in
regard to the acknowledgment of the independence of
Texas by Mexico was made a separate secret treaty,
at the suggestion of Santa Anna, lest it should be
repudiated by the Mexican government before he
arrived home. It was agreed that he should be sent
to Vera Cruz as soon as possible in order that he
might fulfill the conditions of the treaty.
212 - SAM HOUSTON
During the land campaign some operations liad
been performed by the Texan navy. Two small
schooners, the Invincible and the Liberty, had been
purchased and put in commission. Two others, the
Independence and the Brutus, were afterward ob-
tained. These vessels cruised oE the coast for the
purpose of interrupting the supplies of the Mexican
troops by sea. Early in April the Invincible had an
engagement for two hours with the Mexican vessel
Montezuma off Brazos Santiago, and drove her
ashore. The Invincible also captured the American
brig Pocket, bound for Matamoras, with supplies for
the Mexican troops. The Texan vessels were manned
by volunteer crews, who were as ready to turn their
hands to fighting by sea as by land. Some of the
sailors had possibly seen service with Lafitte, and the
commanders were as handy and brisk in fighting as
in meeting the exigencies of navigation in times when
the merchant service had all the attributes of adven-
ture. "Mexican" Thompson was by no means the
only daring and desperate adventurer upon the Gulf
coast in those days, and there was no lack of men
ready to take service on either side from sheer love
of fighting or the hope of plunder. The American
and English governments were obliged to keep cruis-
ers in the Gulf for the protection of their merchant
shipping, and on several occasions the belligerents
were taken in hand and threatened with prosecution
under the laws against piracy. The little Texan
vessels inflicted a good deal of annoyance upon Mexi-
CRITICISMS ON THE CAMPAIGN 213
can commerce, and tlie Mexican government sent
agents to Europe to endeavor to secure a more for-
midable fleet.
A great deal of local controversy lias arisen over
Houston's conduct of the San Jacinto campaign, and
some very bitter criticisms have been made upon it.
Some of the leading officers, who were afterward
opposed to him politically, charged him with coward-
ice, and asserted that he was forced to fight by the
demands of his men, and their threats to depose him
if he did not. Houston's unsparing tongue and re-
criminating charges aggravated their violence, and
the harshest personalities were exchanged. Houston
defended himself at length in his last speech in the
United States Senate, February 28, 1859. In it he
gave a history of the campaign, and accused Colonel
Sidney Sherman and other officers of cowardice and
misconduct. Ex-President Anson Jones, in his vol-
ume "Memoranda and Official Correspondence re-
lating to the History of Texas and its Annexation,"
published to exploit himself at the expense of Hous-
ton, declared that Houston's plan was not to fight at
all, but to fall back behind the Neches, which at one
time had been claimed by the United States as the
boundary of its territory. It was expected that this
would not be respected by Santa Anna, and that
he would come into collision with the United States
troops which had been advanced beyond the Sabine
under General E. P. Gaines. This would give an
excuse for active hostilities on the part of the United
214 SAM HOUSTON
States, and a war of conquest against Mexico, such
as was afterward brought on by the movement of
General Taylor's troops to the Eio Grande. Jones
asserted that Houston had told him, while the army
was encamped in the Brazos bottom, that he intended
to retreat, and "win a bloodless victory." He be-
lieved that there was an understanding with Presi-
dent Jackson in accordance with this scheme. It is
true that on the outbreak of hostilities between Texas
and Mexico, General Gaines was ordered to advance
to the frontier under instructions from the Secretary
of War to prevent any attack by the Indian tribes
against the people of either Texas or the United
States. But he was ordered to observe a strict neu-
trality between the contending parties, and to permit
neither one of them to cross the boundary in arms.
Gaines concentrated several regiments at the Sabine,
and applied for permission to cross the boundary in
case the Mexicans threatened the frontier with a hos-
tile force. It was given to him in his discretion, but
he was advised not to advance beyond Nacogdoches.
There is no doubt that President Jackson, like the
majority of the people of the United States, earnestly
sympathized with the Texan colonists in their struggle
for independence. But there is nothing to indicate
that it was not his purj)ose to observe a complete
neutrality, and no evidence whatever to show that
there was such an understanding between himself and
Houston, as intimated by Jones. It was a proper
measure of precaution to advance a force to the bor-
PLAN OF CAMPAIGN 215
der to prevent the violation of United States territory
by either party, and to prevent the possibility of any
disturbance by the fickle and turbulent Indians.
The presence of General Gaines's force, undoubtedly,
had a quieting effect upon the latter, who might have
been persuaded by the Mexican agents to take up
arms against the colonists.
Houston's plan of campaign probably was to fall
back until he was joined by a sufficient force to give
battle to the Mexican army, if it remained concen-
trated, if he had to retreat beyond the Trinity or even
to the Sabine. When the news reached him, at his
camp on the Brazos, that Santa Anna had gone south
with a small division he moved rapidly after him with
the purpose of giving battle, and ending the war at a
stroke. He might have attacked and overwhelmed
Sesma on the Colorado, but it would only have re-
sulted in a concentration of the Mexican columns
under Santa Anna, and a further retreat or a battle
at a disadvantage. By not attacking Sesma, the
chance was that Santa Anna would scatter his forces
to occupy the country, and in his impatience and
self-confidence put himself into the power of the
Texans. This, indeed, was what happened. There
is no doubt that Houston followed Santa Anna for
the purpose of giving battle, and with the assurance
of victory. He addressed a note to Colonel Henry
Raguet at Nacogdoches, just before crossing Buffalo
Bayou to Harrisburg, in which he said : —
"This morning we are in preparation to meet
216 SAM HOUSTON
Santa Anna. It is tlie only chance of saving Texas.
From time to time I have looked for reinforcements
in vain. The Convention adjourning to Harrisburg
struck panic throughout the country. Texas could
have started at least 4000 men. We will only have
about 700 to march with, beside the camp guard.
We go to conquer. It is wisdom growing out of ne-
cessity to meet the enemy now. Every consideration
enforces it. No previous occasion would justify it."
Houston might have attacked Santa Anna on the
first day of their meeting, and before the latter was
reinforced by General Cos. His reason, as given
after the battle, was that he did not want "to make
two bites of one cherry." What he did accomplish
by waiting was to take the Mexican troops by sur-
prise, although it was hardly to be counted on in
the exercise of ordinary intelligence by Santa Anna.
His destruction of Vince's bridge showed that he
meant to make the battle a decisive one, and that he
had the utmost confidence in a victory. There was
no opportunity for the display of tactical skill in the
battle, but his dash at the works showed the determi-
nation for a vigorous and deadly stroke, which was
all that was necessary. Houston's plan of campaign
was wise and prudent according to the ordinary rules
of war. Perhaps he erred in not counting suffi-
ciently on the fighting quality of the Texan as com-
pared with the Mexican soldier, and might have de-
feated the entire Mexican army with as large odds
against him as Taylor had at Buena Vista. But he
HIS WISDOM VINDICATED 217
had no artillery, and his troops were raw and with-
out discipline. It would have been a great risk,
which he was not justified in taking, and the event
was a vindication of his wisdom.
CHAPTER XII
FIRST TERM AS PRESIDENT
The army under General Rusk left the camp at
San Jacinto to follow the Mexican forces under Fili-
sola, and see that they continued their retreat. Af-
ter the victory of San Jacinto, companies which had
been on their way joined the army, or gathered at
the headquarters of the government at Yelasco. Vol-
unteer companies which had been raised in the United
States came by sea and land. Felix Huston, a prom-
inent lawyer of Mississippi, enlisted and equipped a
force at his own expense. On the protest of the
Mexican minister Gorostiza, the district attorney of
Mississippi was instructed to arrest him, but reported
that he was unable to do so in the condition of popu-
lar feeling. Huston brought in his force, which he
claimed to be 500 men, but the adjutant -general of
the army reported it as much less. On June 1, Gen-
eral Thomas Jefferson Green arrived at Velasco on
the steamer Ocean, from New Orleans, with 250
men. The excitement and indignation at the agree-
ment for the release of Santa Anna had been grow-
ing. Secretary Lamar had issued a letter, full of
impassioned and inflated rhetoric, in which he called
for his punishment "by the laws of Draco." When
ARREST OF SANTA ANNA 219
the volunteers from New Orleans arrived the turbu-
lence increased, and it was determined to prevent
Santa Anna from sailing for Mexico. He had al-
ready gone on board the Texan schooner Invincible
with his staff, and had addressed a farewell letter to
the Texan soldiers, in which he thanked them for
their kindness, and called them his friends. Vice-
President Zavala and Bailey Hardiman, the Secre-
tary of the Treasury, were to accompany him to Vera
Cruz as commissioners to secure the ratification of
the treaty. Captain Brown of the Invincible de-
clared that he would not sail without orders from
"the people." President Burnett, making a virtue
of necessity, directed General Green to bring Santa
Anna on shore, telling him that he would be held
responsible for the life of the prisoner. Santa Anna
was found in the cabin, and refused to obey. He
was frantic from fear. "He lay on his back, and his
respiration was difficult." He declared that he had
taken opium, and would soon die. On a threat to
put him in irons he got up and joined the party. He
was put into the boat, and became still more alarmed
at the sight of the crowd on shore. He was reas-
sured, and advised to wave the Texan flag. He did
so with trembling hands, and was landed at Quin-
tana, on the opposite side of the bay from Yelasco,
where he was put under guard. Having recovered
from his fear of immediate destruction, he addressed
a fervent protest to President Burnett, complaining
of the violence to which he had been subjected, and
220 SAM HOUSTON
of the breaking of tlie terms of the treaty agreement.
Burnett replied, apologizing for the violation of the
agreement, and saying that its fulfillment would have
to be postponed for a season on account of "the
highly excited popular indignation."
General Rusk was unable to control the turbulent
and restless spirits in the army, which Houston had
been able to keep in some measure of restraint.
They attacked the government for its failure to sup-
ply the army with food and clothing, and inflamed
the indignation of the soldiers at the proposed release
of Santa Anna. On May 29, while the army was
at Victoria, a violent and inflammatory address was
drawn up, complaining of the necessities of the army,
and holding the President responsible for them. It
declared that the army would not permit the release
of Santa Anna without the sanction of a Texan Con-
gress, and demanded that the President should order
an election within two months for the establishment
of a new government. The address was simply a
declaration of insubordination, and the assumption of
supreme authority by the army. President Burnett
replied that the Executive was not to blame for the
wants of which the soldiers complained, as it was
totally without means, and mildly informed them that
when the civil government was compelled to receive
the dictation of an armed force there was serious
danger of its being subverted by military misrule.
Subsequently he issued an address to the people and
the army, arguing forcibly in favor of the advantages
TEXAS AND THE UNITED STATES 221
of the treaty with Santa Anna, and the good effect
which would be produced on the opinion of the world
by sparing the life of the prisoner. President Bur-
nett, however, had no authority beyond his eloquence,
and the government of Texas was very nearly in a
state of anarchy. The army and the people continued
to clamor for the execution of Santa Anna, and there
was no means either of enforcing order, or of collect-
ing money.
There was a strong desire for immediate annexa-
tion to the United States, which would be an absolute
protection against the power of Mexico. On the
20th of May, James Collingsworth and Peter W.
Grayson were appointed commissioners to the United
States, to ask for the mediation of that country be-
tween Texas and Mexico, and for the immediate rec-
ognition of Texan independence. They were also
instructed to urge the government to accede to the
wishes of the Texan people for annexation. The
news of the victory of San Jacinto had caused great
rejoicing in the United States. Public meetings
were held in New York and other cities in favor of
the recognition of the independence of Texas. On
the 18th of June, Mr. Clay, from the Committee on
Foreign Affairs, reported a resolution to recognize the
independence of Texas, and supported it in an elo-
quent speech, but action upon it was postponed.
Mr. Henry M. Morfitt was appointed a special com-
missioner to proceed to Texas and examine and report
on its condition.
222 SAM HOUSTON
After a tedious voyage, Houston arrived at New
Orleans on the 11th of May. His wound had not
received proper attention, and was beginning to show
signs of mortification. He was greatly reduced in
strength, and lay on his cot on the deck as the vessel
ascended the river. News of his approach was for-
warded to the city when the Flora reached "English
Turn," and the levee was lined with crowds to wit-
ness his arrival. He was taken to the house of his
old friend. Colonel William Christy, who had served
with him as a lieutenant during the Creek war, and
who had been very energetic in raising money and
volunteers for the assistance of the Texans. Houston
was attended by Dr. James Kerr, who had been his
physician twenty years before when suffering from
the wound received at the battle of To-ho-pe-ka.
His recovery was slow and painful. More than
twenty pieces of bone were taken from the wound,
and he was confined to his bed for several weeks.
As soon as he was able to move, he went up the Ked
Eiver by steamer to Natchitoches. He proceeded by
slow stages to San Augustine, which he reached on
the 5th of July. The rmnor had arrived there that
the Mexicans were advancing with another invading
army. Houston, leaning on his crutches, delivered
an address to the citizens, which resulted in the de-
parture of 160 men for the army within two days.
News was also soon afterward received that Colonels
Millard and Wheelock had left the army, with an or-
der to the government to deliver up Santa Anna for
PROTEST BY HOUSTON 223
immediate execution, and for the arrest of President
Burnett. Houston at once sent a protest to General
Rusk : —
Ayish Bayou, July 26, 1836.
To THE General commanding the Army of
Texas :
Sir^ — I have just heard through a citizen of the
army that it is the intention to remove General
Santa Anna to the army, and place him upon his
trial. I cannot credit this statement ; it is obviously
contrary to the true policy of Texas. The advan-
tages which his capture presented to us will be de-
stroyed. Disregard, if you will, our national char-
acter, and place what construction you please upon
the rules of civilized warfare, we are compelled by
every principle of humanity and morality to abstain
from every act of passion or inconsideration that
is unproductive of positive good. Execute Santa
Anna, and what will be the fate of the Texans who
are held prisoners by the Mexicans ? What will be
the condition of the North Americans residing within
the limits of Mexico? Death to them and confis-
cation of their property is the least that can be
expected. Doubtless torture will be added to the
catastrophe, when stimulated by ignorance, fanati-
cism, and the last expiring struggle of the priesthood
for power and dominion. Texas, to be respected,
must be considerate, politic, and just in her actions.
Santa Anna living, and secured beyond all danger of
escape, in the eastern section of Texas (as I first sug-
224 SA3I HOUSTON
gested), may be of incalculable advantage to Texas in
her present situation. In cool blood to offer up the
living to the manes of the departed only finds an ex-
ample in the religion and warfare of the savages.
Eegard for one's departed friends should stimulate us
in the hour of battle, and would excuse us in the
moment of victory for partial excesses, at which our
calmer feelings of humanity would relent.
The affairs of Texas, as connected with General
Santa Anna as President of the Republic of Mexico,
have become matter of consideration to which the
attention of the United States has been called, and
for Texas, at this moment, to proceed to extreme
measures, as to the merits or demerits of General
Santa Anna, would be treating that government
with high disrespect, and I would respectfully add,
in my opinion, it would be incurring the most unfor-
tunate responsibility for Texas.
I, therefore, Commander-in-Chief of the army of
the Republic, do solemnly protest against the trial,
sentence, and execution of General Antonio Lopez de
Santa Anna, President of the Republic of Mexico,
until the relations in which we are to stand to the
United States shall be ascertained.
Sam Houston,
Commaiider-in- Chief of the Army.
The protest had its effect in calming the vindictive
passions of the army, and in preventing the military
trial and execution of Santa Anna. The Texan army
RETREAT OF MEXICAN ARMY 225
had been swelled to about 2500 men by volunteers
from the colonists and from the United States, and
was in a very undisciplined and disorganized condi-
tion. The ambitious adventurers all coveted imme-
diate distinction and authority. "There were very
few above the rank of captain who did not aspire
to be commander-in-chief." The leaders cultivated
popularity by the rough and ready methods of frontier
politicians, and the camp was a good deal like a pro-
longed political barbecue. General Felix Huston,
known among the soldiers as "Old Long Shanks"
and "Old Leather Breeches," assumed authority, and
conducted himself like the leader of a popular mob.
Meanwhile, the Mexican troops had retreated from
the territory of Texas. When the news of the defeat
at San Jacinto reached the City of Mexico, Tornel,
the Secretary of War, sent a dispatch to General
Filisola to hold San Antonio, announcing that fresh
preparations would be made for an army of invasion.
But Filisola' s army was already beyond the Nueces
when the order reached him, and he continued his
retreat toward Matamoras. He was superseded, and
directed to turn the command over to General Urrea,
who was already in Matamoras. Urrea commanded
the army to halt, but its condition was such that the
officers decided that it must reach a place of shelter
and supply, or perish. It pushed on and reached
Matamoras May 18. No reinforcements were sent
by the Mexican government, and the chaos and con-
fusion which resulted from the absence of Santa
226 SAM HOUSTON
Anna prevented any attempt for tlie renewal of the
invasion of Texas. There being no enemy to fight
within the limits of the territory schemes were re-
newed in the Texan army for the invasion of Mexico,
and it was proposed to advance upon Matamoras.
To add to the confusion and disorganization the
government a]3pointed Secretary Lamar to be com-
mander-in-chief, in place of Houston, and he pro-
ceeded to the camp to assume the command. This
produced great dissatisfaction. The officers protested
against his claim. Lamar persisted in his right, and
it was agreed to leave it to a vote of the soldiers as
to whether they would receive Lamar as commander-
in-chief or not. After the usual stump oratory the
vote was taken, and, there being an overwhelming
majority against Lamar, he retired.
The only thing accomplished by the Texan army
during the period was the capture of three vessels in
the harbor of Copano by a company of twenty
mounted rangers under the command of Captain
Isaac W. Burton. The company had been sent by
General Kusk to see that no body of the enemy re-
mained below Refugio. In the harbor of Copano
they discovered a vessel, the Watchman, laden with
supplies for the Mexican army. A portion of the
crew were decoyed on shore. Their boat was seized,
and the vessel boarded and captured by the rangers.
While the Watchman was lying in the harbor, wait-
ing for a favorable wind for Yelasco, two other ves-
sels, the Comanche and the Fanny Butler, came in.
SANTA APPEALS TO JACKSON 227
The captain of the Watchman was compelled to signal
to their commanders to come on board his vessel,
where they were seized. The vessels surrendered to
boarding parties, and the three were taken to Yelasco.
Their supplies were valued at $25,000, and were sent
to the army. The rangers received the honorary title
of the "Horse Marines" for their exploit.
Santa Anna was removed from Quintana to Ve-
lasco, and afterward to Columbia. While at Colum-
bia a plot was formed to rescue him by the Mexican
consul at New Orleans through the instrumentality of
a young Spaniard named Bartholomew Pages. It
was asserted that an attempt was made to poison the
guard by means of wine. Santa Anna was put in
irons, and subjected to other indignities. He was
fired at by a drunken soldier through the window of
the house where he was confined. Finally, he was
removed to Orizamba and kept in close confinement.
On the advice of Austin, who had returned from the
United States and visited him, he addressed a letter
to President Jackson asking him to interfere for his
release, and professing a desire for the immediate
recognition of the independence of Texas by the
United States and Mexico. Meanwhile, the Con-
gress of Mexico had passed a decree that all treaties
and agreements executed by Santa Anna while he
was a prisoner were null and void.
A proclamation was issued by President Burnett
on the 23d of July for a general election, to be held
on the 1st of September, for the choice of a President
228 SAM HOUSTON
and Congress to take the place of the provisional
government. The question of an application for
annexation to the United States was also submitted
to the popular vote. Politics grew quickly and
rankly in Texas. There were two parties, one in
favor of Stephen F. Austin, and one, headed by the
Whartons, in favor of ex-Governor Henry Smith.
Houston was nominated by mass meetings at Colum-
bia, San Augustine, and other places. He professed
an unwillingness to be a candidate, but it is not prob-
able that he was very strenuous in resisting the invi-
tations. His prestige as the victor of San Jacinto
and his gifts of personal popularity resulted in a
triumphant election. He received 4374 votes, to 745
for Smith and 587 for Austin. Mirabeau B. Lamar
was elected Vice-President, on the strength, Houston
said, of an extra line in the latter 's report of the
battle of San Jacinto. The application for annexa-
tion to the United States was voted for with practical
unanimity. The first Congress of Texas assembled
at Columbia, October 3. The date for the inaugura-
tion of the new President was fixed for December 1,
but President Burnett was desirous of escaping from
his anomalous position of provisional and inefficient
authority, and resigned to allow the permanent gov-
ernment to come into power. Houston was installed
on October 22, and delivered an extemporaneous in-
augural address. He urged the necessity of main-
taining the army in a state of vigilance and discipline
to meet any invasion of the enemy. He pointed out
INAUGURAL ADDRESS 229
the importance of establishing friendly relations with
the Indian tribes, which could be secured by a course
of even-handed justice. He expressed warm thanks
to those who had aided the country in its struggle for
independence, and he hoped that the United States
would respond favorably to the appeal of a willing
people for annexation. In concluding, he indulged
in one of the histrionic effects of which he was fond.
He disengaged his sword, and, after a pause and ap-
parent struggle with his emotions, he handed it to the
presiding officer, saying, "It now, sir, becomes my
duty to make a presentation of this sword, the em-
blem of my past office. I have worn it with some
humble pretentions in the defense of my country, and
should the danger of my country again call for my
services, I expect to resume it, and respond to that
call, if needful, with my blood and my life."
Houston addressed himself with great practical
sagacity to the duties of his office. He appointed the
two competitors for the Presidency to places in his
Cabinet. Austin was made Secretary of State, and
Smith Secretary of the Treasury. Colonel William
H. Wharton was appointed minister to the United
States, and General Memucan Hunt was afterward
added as a commissioner to urge annexation. Colo-
nel J. Pinkney Henderson was appointed minister
to Great Britain and France. The duties of the new
government of Texas were heavy. It had to main-
tain an army to meet a possible invasion, to equip
an adequate navy for the defense of the coast, to de-
230 SAM HOUSTON
fend the frontiers against the always turbulent and
dangerous Indians, to provide for the administration
of justice and all the functions of a civil government,
without a dollar in the treasury or any adequate
means available for taxation. Congress immediately
passed an act authorizing the President to issue bonds
to the amount of $5,000,000, payable in thirty years,
and commissioners were appointed to go to the
United States to attempt to negotiate the loan. Ad-
ditional bounties were offered for volunteers, and the
President was authorized to increase and reorganize
the army. An act was passed for the increase of the
navy by the purchase of a twenty -four-gun sloop-of-
war, two steamers, and two eleven -gun schooners.
The rates of duties on imports were fixed. The
courts were organized, a land office and mail routes
established. The boundaries of the Republic were
decided to extend from the Sabine to the Rio Grande,
and northward to the forty-second parallel of latitude,
which would have included the greater portion of
New Mexico. The boundary line of the province
had been somewhat indefinite under the authority of
Spain and Mexico, but its relative place between
Texas and New Mexico was well understood, and
there was no foundation for the claim to the forty-
second parallel. Among the measures of Congress
was one characteristic of the wild-cat schemes in-
vented by adventurers and land speculators. An act
was passed to incorporate the Texas Railroad, Navi-
gation, and Banking Company, of which Branch T.
WILD-CAT SCHEME 231
Archer was president. The company was given ex-
traordinary and monopolistic powers. It was allowed
to discount 130,000,000 upon a cai3ital of $10,000,-
000, to build railroads and canals from the Sabine to
the Rio Grande and regulate its own charges, to lay
out town sites with extensive land grants, and in
general to control the future business and develop-
ment of Texas. For these enormous privileges, it
agreed to pay a bonus of only $25,000 into the trea-
sury. The scheme was a gigantic fraud and confi-
dence game. The capital stock was subscribed, but
none of the money was paid in. The fictitious shares
were sold and traded as elements of a swindle. An
attempt was made to bribe Houston by sending him
a share of the stock, but he returned it, and vigor-
ously opposed the bill. The charter, of course, was
eventually forfeited by the failure of the subscribers
to comply with its conditions. After a session of two
months Congress adjourned, to meet May 1 at Hous-
ton, the newly founded city at the head of Buffalo
Bayou, which was declared the capital.
One of the pressing questions was the disposition
to be made of Santa Anna. When Houston arrived
at Columbia, previous to his inauguration, Santa
Anna sent a request for him to come and see him,
and Houston did so. The prisoner was much af-
fected. He embraced Houston, and wept as his head
rested on Houston's broad chest. Houston patted
him and consoled him as he would a frightened child.
He procured Santa Anna some additional comforts,
232 SAM HOUSTON
and promised to do liis utmost to secure his release.
He sent a memorandum to Santa Anna, in which he
suggested that he should communicate with President
Jackson, expressing his willingness to favor the an-
nexation of Texas to the United States, and to urge
Jackson to become responsible for the fulfillment of
Santa Anna's stipulations to the people of Texas.
He advised him to maintain his authority as Presi-
dent of Mexico, although a prisoner, and to issue his
instructions to the Mexican minister at Washington
accordingly. After the inauguration, Santa Anna
addressed a letter to the President petitioning for his
release, which was referred to Congress. The mem-
bers of Congress shared the prevailing indignation
against Santa Anna, and passed a resolution that he
should be retained as a prisoner. Houston vetoed
the bill, and, after an excited debate, the question
was left to the decision of the President. In the
mean time. President Jackson had responded in
kindly terms to Santa Anna's appeal for his media-
tion, and invited him to visit Washington on his
release. Houston decided to release the prisoner at
once, and send him to Washington with an escort.
Santa Anna and his party set out for Washington on
November 25, by way of New Orleans. He was
entertained at dinner by President Jackson, and sent
by an American man-of-war to Vera Cruz, where he
arrived February 23, 1837. He found that he had
fallen into complete disfavor, and retired to his estate
at Mango del Clavo. His old rival Bustamente, hav-
RECOGNITION OF TEXAS 233
ing been recalled from exile, was triumpliantly chosen
President at the ensuing election in March, Santa
Anna receiving but two votes. It is an evidence of
Santa Anna's inherent meanness of character that he
borrowed 12000 from Colonel Bernard E. Bee, one
of his escort, for which he gave a draft. On his re-
turn home he allowed the draft to be protested, and
never paid the debt. His more honorable enemies
did it for him; the legislature of Texas afterward
made an appropriation to indemnify Colonel Bee.
The question of the recognition of the indepen-
dence of Texas by the United States caused a good
deal of political excitement in that country, and was
the beginning of the prolonged and violent agitation
which accompanied the project of annexation. While
the majority of the people of the United States un-
doubtedly were proud of the courage of their kins-
men in Texas, and enthusiastic over the prospects of
their independence, the shadow of the extension of
the slave power, foreboded by annexation, alarmed
the Northern politicians, and alienated a portion of
the people. The stories against the character of the
Texan colonists were revived, and the revolt was
again attributed to a filibuster conspiracy. There
were some prudent suggestions that the recognition of
the independence of Texas would bring on a war with
Mexico, but as a whole the opj)osition was generated
by political means, and the majority of the people
of the United States were really in favor of it.
Commissioner Morfitt had returned, and made a fa-
234 SAM HOUSTON
vorable report as to the condition of Texas. He esti-
mated the population of the country at about 58,000,
of whom 30,000 were Americans or Europeans, 3670
Mexicans, 5000 negroes, and 20,000 Indians, exact
figures being, of course, unobtainable in regard to
the Indians. He described the colonists to be in a
condition to maintain their independence, and pointed
out that their character and habits enabled them to
carry on a war with but little cost to themselves. He
estimated the debts and obligations of Texas at about
$1,250,000. President Jackson, notwithstanding his
strong sympathies with the people of Texas, and his
desire and expectation of the ultimate annexation of
the territory, expressed himself in a very conservative
manner in his communication to Congress. In trans-
mitting the report of Commissioner Morfitt he said
in regard to annexation, "Necessarily a work of time,
and uncertain in itself, it is calculated to expose our
conduct to misconstruction in the eyes of the world."
On December 23, he sent a message to Congress in
regard to the recognition of the independence of
Texas, in which he said that "prudence would dictate
that the United States should stand aloof until the
independence of Texas had been recognized by Mex-
ico, or one of the great foreign powers, or until
events should have proved beyond dispute the ability
of the people to maintain their independent sover-
eignty."- He, however, referred the matter to the dis-
cretion of Congress, and intimated that he would be
governed by its decision. On the 11th of January,
TEXAS RECOGNIZED 235
Hon. Robert J. Walker, Senator from Mississippi,
introduced a resolution for the recognition of Texas
as an independent nation. The question was post-
poned until March 1, when the resolution was taken
up. After a warm debate, in which speeches in favor
of recognition were made by Clay, Calhoun, Benton,
Preston, and others, the resolution was adopted by a
vote of twenty-four to nineteen. The vote was not
on strict sectional or party lines. Senators King, of
Georgia, and King, of Alabama, and other Southern
members, voting against recognition. An attempt
was made to reconsider the vote the next day, and it
only failed by a vote of twenty-four to twenty -four.
President Jackson approved the resolution as the last
act of his official life. Secretary of State Forsyth
informed Minister Wharton that the question of an-
nexation could not then be considered by the United
States government.
General Henderson, the Texan minister, was fa-
vorably received by the British government, although
the Anti-Slavery Society promptly protested against
the independence of Texas, on the ground that Mex-
ico had declared the abolition of slavery, while
the American colonists maintained it. The British
ministry agreed to make a special commercial treaty
with Texas, although for the time being it refused to
recognize her independence from Mexico. A simi-
lar arrangement was made with the government of
France, and the French minister at Washington was
directed to send a commissioner to Texas to examine
and report on the condition of the country.
236 SAM HOUSTON
In accordance with his settled policy Houston ap-
pointed commissioners to visit the various tribes of
Indians, and arrange for treaties of friendship and
alliance. No difficulty had occurred, except with the
Caddoes, who had recently entered the territory from
the United States, and had been committing some
depredations upon the outlying settlers. Mexican
agents had been busy among the Indian tribes, en-
deavoring to induce them to commence hostilities
against the colonists. A delegation of twenty from
the Northern Indians had been persuaded to visit
Matamoras to form a treaty with Mexico for that
purpose. But Houston's reputation was well estab-
lished among all the Indians as the friendly white
chief, and the efforts of the Mexican authorities to
engage them in definite warfare with the colonists
were unavailing. No trouble occurred from the In-
dians during his term as President, except the indi-
vidual collisions and inevitable depredations and
aggressions on both sides which accompany the con-
tact of the two races. Although friendly to the In-
dians, Houston knew their unstable nature and the
perils of the situation, and maintained companies of
rangers to punish thefts and attacks, and encouraged
the building of block-houses upon the frontier.
Congress reassembled on May 1, and Houston sent
them an elaborate and business-like message. He
congratulated them on the recognition of the inde-
pendence of Texas by the United States, and said,
" We now occupy the proud attitude of a sovereign
HOUSTON'S MESSAGE 237
and independent Republic, wliicli will force upon us
the obligation of evincing to the world that we are
worthy to be free." He urged that their legislation
should be not only for present emergencies, but for
a permanent system adapted to the future growth and
development of the country. The finances of the
Eepublic were the most pressing subject of attention.
None of the authorized 15,000,000 loan had been
raised in the United States, owing to the depressed
condition of the money market; and the sales of the
land scrip had not been productive, owing, as the
President believed, to the mismanagement of the
agents in New Orleans and Mobile, who had ren-
dered no account of their transactions, and had al-
lowed drafts upon them to go to protest. Claims
upon the treasury had only been met by promises to
pay when in funds, and were sold to speculators at
a heavy discount. The land law, passed at the last
session over the President's veto, had proved imprac-
ticable and unsatisfactory, and he recommended mea-
sures for ascertaining the location of all the occupied
lands in the country to prevent litigation about titles.
He spoke strongly in regard to the African slave
trade. He declared that there was evidence that
thousands of slaves had been imported to the island
of Cuba for the purpose of being transferred to
Texas. The Texan minister had been instructed to
report the facts to the United States government.
The navy of Texas was necessary for its immediate
defense, and it was the duty of the United States and
238 SAM HOUSTON
of England to employ a portion of their force in the
GuK to arrest the accursed traffic. Nothing had
occurred in regard to the question of annexation, but
it was hoped that the next session of the Congress of
the United States would take up the subject in a
friendly spirit. England had given indications of
friendliness and good- will to the new Republic. No
change had taken place in the relations between
Texas and Mexico. Texas was confident that she
could maintain her rights, and was not willing to in-
voke the mediation of other powers. Mexico, while
apparently determined to protract the war, was torn by
internal convulsions, and unable to defend her fron-
tier against the attacks of predatory Indians. The
army of Texas was in a good condition, and able to
meet any invading force brought against it. Al-
though Mexico had refused to enter into any arrange-
ment for the exchange of prisoners, he recommended
the release, upon parole, of the Mexican soldiers still
detained in the country.
Although Houston had spoken favorably of the
condition of the Texan army, it was still disorgan-
ized and turbulent, and he took measures to reduce
and practically disband it. General Felix Huston
had succeeded to the command on the retirement of
General Rusk, who had been appointed Secretary of
War in Houston's Cabinet. He had no capacity or
training as a soldier, and acted merely as the leader
of an armed and turbulent mob. General James
Hamilton, who had been governor of South Carolina,
GENERAL FELIX HUSTON 289
and had manifested an active interest in the Texan
struggle for independence, was invited to take com-
mand of the army, but declined. Albert Sidney
Johnston, who had recently resigned from the United
States army and come to Texas after the battle of
San Jacinto, had joined Rusk's army as a private.
His soldierly appearance and manifest ability caused
him to be promoted to be adjutant-general, and, after
the refusal of General Hamilton to accept the com-
mand, he was appointed by President Houston the
senior brigadier-general. General Felix Huston had
indicated his intention of retaining the command by
the summary process of challenging and shooting
any one who should be appointed to displace him.
When Johnston arrived with his commission on the
4th of February, Huston promptly challenged him,
and, in the duel which took place the following day,
Johnston was severely wounded in the hip and inca-
pacitated from further service. No one was found to
accept the command at the cost of fighting so dan-
gerous a duelist as Huston, and he retained his posi-
tion at the head of the army. He was full of schemes
for the invasion of Mexico, and at the opening of the
session of Congress in May he repaired to the capitol
to obtain authority for an attack upon Matamoras.
Houston determined to put a stop to all such foolish
enterprises, and to get rid of an army which was not
only a heavy expense, but a peril to the maintenance
of the civil government. Under the influence of their
commander the volunteers had threatened to "chastise
240 SAM HOUSTON
the President, kick Congress out of doors, and give
laws to Texas." Among General Huston's ideas of
maintaining his popularity with the soldiers was to
indulge them occasionally in general sprees, which
usually wound up in a free fight in which several
vv^ould be killed. The President was convinced that
the unsettled government and internal troubles of
Mexico would prevent any serious attempt at inva-
sion, and that an impromptu levy of the colonists
would make a better army, if necessar}?", than the
undisciplined and dangerous force of foreign adven-
turers collected at San Antonio. While General
Huston was urging the Matamoras expedition upon
the members of Congress, the President, on May 18,
issued orders to the Secretary of War to proceed
secretly and swiftly to headquarters, and furlough all
the companies except 600 men. There was no leader
to resist the order, and the volunteers were appar-
ently wearied of an adventure which promised neither
profit nor glory. They were marched to various
ports on the coast, and took their departure for the
United States under a furlough to return within
thirty days if called for. General Huston, deprived
of his armed mob, returned soon afterward to the
United States. General Johnston was retained in
the command, with a furlough- to enable him to re-
cover from his wound. There is no doubt that, if
the finances of the country had been able to sustain
the expense, the maintenance of a well-organized and
disciplined army would have been of advantage to
CONDITIONS OF THE TIME 241
Texas, and prevented the occasional raids by the
Mexicans which afterward took place. But the
treasury was empty, and the army could only have
been paid by the issue of irredeemable paper money,
with its certainty of bringing bankruptcy and repudi-
ation. The army was mainly composed of lawless
and adventurous volunteers who were ready for any
mischievous enterprise that would have driven Mexico
into active hostilities. And the temperament of the
Congress was neither stable nor judicious enough to
make it sure that it would exercise a restraining in-
fluence. In the mean time, immigration was coming
into the country, strengthening its resources and
means of defense, and every day in which fighting
could be avoided was an advantage. Already trade
was being renewed along the Mexican frontier, in
spite of the hostile attitudes of the two governments,
and there was a chance that there would be no further
war.
The condition of the land grants had made a great
deal of trouble. The locations of the leaofues and
labors under the Mexican system had conflicted with
the grants by acres under the new government, and
many of the old settlers had resisted the change.
The empresario grants, which had been used for spec-
ulative purposes, had, created a host of fictitious
claims, many of them held by innocent persons who
had been swindled in buying the scrip. The acts of
the last legislature of Coahuila and Texas in dispos-
ing of large portions of land in Texas at nominal
242 SAM HOUSTON
prices, although repudiated, had produced another
batch of claims. The laws giving the preference in
locations to volunteers, and the negotiations of public
land scrip in the United States, created additional
confusion. A large portion of the time of Congress
was devoted to struggling with this question. Hous-
ton vetoed several unsatisfactory and mischievous
bills, and it was not until the close of the last session
that the land office was opened under intelligent and
practicable regulations.
The total lack of money was the most serious bur-
den upon the new government. The collapse of the
banking system in the United States, and the conse-
quent financial distress, had prevented any success in
negotiating a general loan. The sales of public land
scrip produced little or nothing, owing to the confu-
sion of titles and the doubt as to whether Texas could
maintain her independeiice. It would appear that
Houston shared the general delusion in regard to the
means to be expected from this source, and blamed
the agents for mismanagement when there was really
no demand for the lands which was not more than
supplied by the sales and trades of individual grants.
The treasury remained empty, and the audited claims
were used as currency or hawked about at a ruinous
discount. On June 6, the President was obliged to
send a special message to Congress, calling attention
to the condition of the quartermaster's department of
the army. He said that the government was unable
to obtain any supplies upon its own credit, and the
FINANCIAL DIFFICULTIES 243
Executive had been compelled to give his individual
obligation, indorsed by some of the members. A
part of the army was in an actual state of mutiny for
the want of provisions, and Galveston Island would
have been deserted but for the relief thus obtained.
Since he came into office the President had received
only 1500 for provisions for the troops. The public
officers had received no salary, and had tendered
their resignations from time to time on account of
being unable to meet their expenses. Congress did
the best it could by passing financial acts, but it was
like trying to run a mill without water. There were
the usual attempts of new and impoverished countries
to create money by fiat legislation. In May, Con-
gress passed an act authorizing the issue of promis-
sory notes to the amount of 11,000,000. This was
vetoed by the President, on the ground that half that
amount was all that was necessary for a circulating
medium or could be kept at par. The issue was re-
stricted to ^500,000, but a bill was passed authoriz-
ing the President to reissue the notes, as they were
returned to the treasury, in his discretion, to an
amount not to exceed 11,000,000. At the close of
Houston's administration the promissory notes, which
stood at about sixty -five cents on the dollar, amounted
to '1739,789. The total indebtedness, including au-
dited claims, amounted to r|l, 942,000. The customs
duties, which were the only source of reliable revenue,
amounted to 8278,134 for the last year. The record
of Texan finance, under the circumstances, was a cred-
244 SAM HOUSTON
itable one, and it was Houston's firm hand and saga-
cious judgment, restraining extravagance and pre-
venting false financial schemes, which kept down the
indebtedness, and enabled the government to carry
on its operations without collapse.
Among the events of the year was the loss of the
Texan vessel the Independence, which was captured
April 17, about thirty miles off Velasco, by two Mex-
ican vessels, the Libertador and the Yincedor del
Alamo. After a severe fight of two hours, the Inde-
pendence surrendered, and was taken to Matamoras.
On board was Colonel William H. Wharton, the
Texan minister to the United States, who was return-
ing home. His brother. Colonel John A. Wharton,
was sent with thirty Mexican prisoners, to obtain the
release of the captives by exchange. He was thrown
into prison by the Mexican authorities, but both the
Whartons and the other prisoners eventually effected
their escape by the aid of friends in Matamoras.
The British vessel Ellen Russell was captured in
the Gulf by a Texan vessel, on suspicion of being
laden with contraband of war, but proved to have
only merchandise. She was released by President
Houston, and an indemnity afterward paid by the
government.
Lorenzo de Zavala, who had been elected Vice-
President in the Provisional Government of Texas,
died at his residence near San Jacinto, November 15.
Zavala was a man of strong patriotic impulses, and
more than ordinary capacity and integrity, who, un-
''THE FATHER OF TEXAS'' 245
der better circumstances, would liave exercised a
commanding and wliolesome influence on the affairs
of Mexico. He would not submit to the tyranny of
Santa Anna, and fled to Texas, where he entered
heartily into the struggle for independence. Al-
though a Mexican, he was highly esteemed by the
Texan leaders for his integrity and sincerity, as well
as for his courage and sagacity. Stephen F. Austin
died at Columbia, December 27, from an attack of
pneumonia. He was but forty-three years of age.
Austin was a man of the highest character, of judicial
moderation and prudence, as well as energy and per-
severance. He appreciated the conditions on which
alone a permanent and prosperous colony could be
founded, and carried them out with rare tact and
sagacity. He encouraged industry, and governed the
lawless elements of the population by his weight of
character and personal influence. To him more than
to any other is due the creation of an American State
in Texas. He was forced into political prominence
by the demands of the time rather than any desire
of his own, and was as modest and self-sacrificing as
he was sagacious and practical. Public honors were
paid at his funeral by the President and members of
Congress, and the remains were taken on the steamer
Yellowstone to Peach Point, near the mouth of the
Brazos. President Houston issued an address begin-
ning, "The Father of Texas is no more," and order-
ing all officers, civil and military, to wear crape for
thirty days, in honor of his memory.
246 SAM HOUSTON
Houston's manner of life as President of the Ee-
public of Texas was a singular compound of ceremo-
nial dignity and frontier primitiveness, mucli like that
of an aboriginal potentate. He lived in a log cabin
in the frank and ready familiarity with all comers
which the times compelled, and which suited his gen-
ius for popularity. But he put on the airs of state
on occasion, and is reported to have worn a sort of
velvet robe, which must have been in singular contrast
to the furniture and appearance of the audience
chamber, when he gave formal audience to the agents
of foreign nations. He still kept up his drinking
habits, and was king of the riots, as well as of the
counsels, of his vigorous and boisterous associates,
without losing his sense of dignity or their respect.
An interesting glimpse of' Houston and his surround-
ings is given through the keenly observant eyes of
Audubon, the naturalist, who visited the town of
Houston in May, 1837. He says in his diary: —
"We walked toward the President's house, accom-
panied by the Secretary of the Navy, and as soon as
we rose above the bank we saw before us a level of
far-extending prairie, destitute of timber and rather
poor soil. Houses, half finished, and most of them
without roofs, tents, and a liberty pole, with the cap-
itol, were all exhibited to our view at once. We
approached the President's mansion, however, wad-
ing in water above our ankles. This abode of Presi-
dent Houston is a small log house, consisting of two
rooms and a passage through, after the Southern
AUDUBON'S IMPRESSIONS 247
fashion. The moment we stepped over the threshold,
on the right hand of the passage, we found ourselves
ushered into what in other countries would be called
the ante-chamber; the ground floor, however, was
muddy and filthy, a large fire was burning, and a
small table, covered with paper and writing materials,
was in the centre; camp beds, trunks, and different
materials were strewed around the room. We were
at once presented to several members of the Cabinet,
some of whom bore the stamp of men of intellectual
ability, simple, though bold, in their general appear-
ance. Here we were presented to Mr. Crawford, an
agent of the British minister to Mexico, who has
come here on some secret mission.
"The President was engaged in the opposite room
on some national business, and we could not see him
for some time. Meanwhile, we amused ourselves by
walking in the capitol, which was yet without a roof,
and the floors, benches, and tables of both houses of
Congress were as well saturated with water as our
clothes had been in the morning. Being invited by
one of the great men of the place to enter a booth to
take a drink of grog with him, we did so ; but I was
rather surprised that he offered his name instead of
the cash to the bar-keeper.
"We first caught sight of President Houston as he
walked from one of the grog-shops, where he had
been to stop the sale of ardent spirits. He was on
his way to his house, and wore a large, gray, coarse
hat, and the bulk of his figure reminded me of the
248 SAM HOUSTON
appearance of General Hopkins, of Virginia, for, like
him, he is upward of six feet high and strong in pro-
portion. But I observed a scowl in the expression of
his eyes that was forbidding and disagreeable. We
reached his abode before him, but he soon came, and
we were presented to his Excellency. He was
dressed in a fancy velvet coat and trousers trimmed
with broad gold lace, and around his neck was tied a
cravat somewhat in the style of '76. He received us
kindly, was desirous of retaining us for a while, and
offered us every facility in his power. He at once
removed us from the ante-room to his private cham-
ber, which, by the way, was not much cleaner than
the former. We were severally introduced by him
to the different members of his Cabinet and Staff,
and at once asked to drink grog with him, which we
did, wishing success to the new Republic. Our talk
was short, but the impression which was made on our
mind at the time by himself, his officers, and the
place of his abode can never be forgotten."
Houston was married for the second time in Mar-
ion, Alabama, May 9, 1840, to Miss Margaret
Moffette Lea. He was then forty-seven years of age,
his bride twenty-one. The second Mrs. Houston
was a lady of good family, force of character, amia-
bility, and considerable literary talent. She was
aware of Houston's weaknesses in habits when she
married him, and was confident that she could influ-
ence him for the better. She did so, and he reformed
his habits of drinking and swearing, until finally they
were abandoned altogether.
CHAPTER XIII
SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT — ANNEXATION
The Constitution of the Eepublic made the Presi-
dent ineligible for two succeeding terms. There were
three candidates in the field for the succession to
Houston, Mirabeau B. Lamar, the Vice-President,
Peter W. Grayson, and James Collingsworth. The
contest was a very bitter one, and virulent personal
attacks were made against the candidates. Just be-
fore the election Grayson committed suicide by shoot-
ing himself at Bean's Station, Tennessee, and Col-
lingsworth by throwing himself from a steamer into
Galveston Bay. Lamar was elected President, and
David G. Burnett Vice-President. Lamar was a
man of extravagant ideas, and regarded Texas as an
established empire, with all the possibilities of terri-
torial expansion, unlimited wealth, and military and
naval conquest. He was inaugurated December 8,
1838. In his address he declared himself emphati-
cally against annexation to the United States, and
drew a glowing picture of the advantages that would
accrue to Texas from maintaining her own autonomy.
In his first message to Congress he recommended the
establishment of a national bank, to be founded on
the hypothecation of a specific portion of the public
250 SAM HOUSTON
domain, the guarantee of tlie plighted faith of the
nation, and an adequate deposit of specie or its
"equivalent." The specie, or its equivalent, was not
forthcoming, and the bank was not organized.
Lamar's policy in regard to the Indians was the
direct opposite of that of Houston. He declared
that they were public enemies or intruders, and had
no rights to the soil. If any grants had been made
to them by the Mexican government they had been
extorted by fear of the tomahawk and the scalping
knife, and therefore void. The "solemn declara-
tion " made by the Convention of 1835 had never
been ratified, and in any case was void because the
Indians had not fulfilled their part of its obligations
by keeping quiet. He denounced the Indians as pes-
tilent and merciless enemies to the settlers, and de-
clared in favor of a war against them, which "would
admit of no compromise, and have no termination
except in their total extinction or total expulsion."
There is no doubt that Lamar's policy in regard to
the Indians was in accordance with the wishes of the
majority of the white settlers. They regarded the
aboriginal inhabitants simply as noxious wild beasts,
who ought to be cleared from the land like wolves.
Constant collisions took place as the restless colonists
pushed farther and farther into the interior, and the
wild Indians were naturally predatory and barbarous.
Those who were partially civilized, like the Chero-
kees, occupied rich lands which the settlers coveted,
and there was little respect for Indian occupancy or
LAMAR'S ADMINISTRATION 251
agreement as to boundaries. It is one of the most
creditable features in Houston's character that he
opposed the prevailing animosity of the people against
the Indians, and persisted, so far as he had power or
influence, in a system of justice and protection of
their rights. An occasion for active operations against
the Indians was not long wanting. General Cana-
lezo, who had succeeded to Filisola in command of
the troops on the Rio Grande, endeavored to stir up
the Indians to active hostilities against the colonists.
He sent one Manuel Flores as agent to the Cherokees
and other tribes, with letters to the chiefs urging
them to war. Flores and his party were discovered
and attacked near Austin by a number of the colo-
nists. Flores was killed, and his letters fell into the
hands of the Texans. Although there was no evi-
dence that the Cherokee chiefs had made, or were
likely to make, any agreement with the Mexicans, it
was assumed that the danger was pressing, and that
the tribe must be expelled from the country. A
force was organized by General Albert Sidney John-
ston, the Secretary of War, consisting of Colonel
Burleson's regiment, which had been fighting the
prairie Indians in the West, and volunteer companies
under General Rusk and Colonel Landrum, from the
eastern settlements, the whole under the command of
General K. H. Douglass. The Indians were in-
formed in "a firm but friendly manner," by General
Johnston, that they must leave the country and sur-
render their gunlocks. They refused. They were
252 SAM HOUSTON
attacked by the troops on July 14, 1839, near the
Cherokee village, and defeated in a sharp engage-
ment. They rallied the following day and were
again defeated, Bowles, their war chief, being killed.
The troops then advanced against the Shawnees, who
surrendered without a battle. The Texans burned
the cabins and laid waste the cornfields of both these
tribes, and the Indians withdrew across the Red
Kiver, or scattered to the northern prairies, where
they formed hostile and predatory bands against the
settlements. Houston was absent from the country
on a visit to the United States when this raid took
place. He had protested against the repudiation of
the "solemn declaration" in Congress, but without
avail. On his return, he addressed the citizens of
Nacogdoches, who were unanimous in favor of the
expulsion of the Cherokees. The most violent
charges were made against him, and he was accused
of inciting the Indians to resist the government.
Threats were made that he would be shot if he at-
tempted to speak. He came forward and stilled the
crowd by his commanding presence. He denounced
the administration for its breach of plighted faith,
and accused the soldiers of barbarity in mutilating
the body of Bowles. The audience listened in si-
lence, and Houston's courage and sincerity triumphed
over their tumultuous passions.
Trouble broke out with the Comanches from a
more reasonable cause. These haughty and untam-
able Indians had been accustomed to domineer over
LAMAR'S ADMINISTRATION 253
the timorous Mexicans, and to conduct their negotia-
tions in a very masterful and contemptuous fashion.
A delegation of the chiefs of the tribe came into San
Antonio to arrange a treaty of peace with the Texan
commissioners on March 11, 1840. They had agreed
to bring in their captives, but only surrendered Ma-
tilda Lockhart, a little girl. They alleged that the
other twelve prisoners whom they were known to
possess had been captured by other tribes. The
Lockhart girl said that the other captives were de-
tained for ransom in the Indian camp near the town.
The chiefs were informed that all the white captives
must be brought in, and that they would be detained
as prisoners until they were. A company of soldiers
was brought into the council room to keep them under
guard. The chiefs shouted the war-whoop and drew
their knives. A desperate melee took place in the
room, in which the Indians were all killed. The
warriors on the outside took the alarm, and com-
menced to shoot. There was a running fight in the
streets of the town, in which a number of Indians,
including squaws, were killed. The Comanches were
deeply enraged at the slaughter of their chiefs, and
determined to avenge it. On the 4th of August, a
raiding party of 600 swept down upon the country,
and attacked Victoria. They were repulsed, but
gathered a great booty of horses and cattle, and mas-
sacred a number of the outlying settlers. They then
surprised and burned the little town of Linnville on
the coast, most of the inhabitants escaping in boats
254 SAM HOUSTON
and lighters off shore into the harbor. As the Indi-
ans were returning with their booty, they were fol-
lowed and attacked by a body of troops raised among
the settlers. A battle took place on Plum Creek, in
which the Indians were routed and scattered. The
government determined to carry the war into the
Comanche country. The force under Colonel John
H. Moore attacked the principal village of the tribe,
on the Ked fork of the Colorado, October 23. It
was surrounded at daybreak and surprised. Men,
women, and children, were indiscriminately slaugh-
tered, and the village burned. The entire Comanche
nation was exasperated, and a desolating warfare
raged on the frontier during the whole of Lamar's
term of office. Companies of rangers were main-
tained in service during the period at a great ex-
pense, and the frontier settlements were kept in con-
tinual turmoil and peril as the result of the President's
"vigorous Indian policy."
Lamar had no less extensive views in regard to the
naval operations of the Republic. In 1838, Mexico
had been engaged in a war with France Over the
claims of French citizens. The French fleet had
bombarded and taken Vera Cruz, and in an attempt
to drive them out, Santa Anna had lost his leg, and
recovered his popularity. Yucatan had also revolted,
and was endeavoring to gain its independence. The
Texan navy of four vessels had entirely disappeared
at the beginning of Lamar's administration. One
was captured, one sunk, and the other two condemned
LAMAR'S ADMINISTRATION 255
as imseaworthy. Appropriations of imaginary funds
were made on an extensive scale for the purchase of
a new fleet. The steamer Zavala, mounting eight
guns, the sloop-of-war Austin, twenty guns, two
brigs, the Colorado and Dolphin, and three schoon-
ers, the San Bernard, San Antonio, and San Ja-
cinto, were purchased on credit. The fleet was put
under the command of Commodore E. W. Moore,
and sent to Yucatan to aid the insurgents.
The Federalists in the Northern States of Mexico
had taken advantage of the disturbances to organize
a revolt. An adventurer by the name of Canales
undertook to found a Federal Republic in North
Mexico in alliance with Texas, and persuaded a
number of Texans, under Colonels Koss and Jordan,
to join him in an invasion across the Rio Grande.
They were mere filibusters without the authorization
of the Texan government. The expedition shared
the usual fate of the invasions of Mexico, in arousing
the hostility of the inhabitants and experiencing the
treachery of their allies. After fighting several bat-
tles and occupying several towns, they were deserted
on the field of Saltillo by their allies, but fought
their way through the enemy, and retreated in safety
to Texas.
Lamar's great scheme, however, was the conquest
or occupation of New Mexico. An expedition was
organized among the adventurers, who had been dis-
appointed in the failures to invade Mexico, and Con-
gress was asked to authorize and make an appropria-
256 SAM HOUSTON
tion for it. Houston, who was a Representative from
Nacogdoches, was strongly opposed to it. The de-
bate had gone on apparently in its favor, and the
usual fiery and flamboyant speeches had been made
about planting the Lone Star flag on the cathedral
towers of Santa Fe. When they had been concluded,
Houston, who had been sitting on one of the back
benches, engaged in his usual habit of whittling,
rose, and with his practical sense and humorous
illustration demolished the scheme. He pointed out
the folly of the expedition across 600 miles of unin-
habited country, and the mistake of expecting that
the people of New Mexico, who were thoroughly
Mexicans in their education and sympathies, would
receive the invaders otherwise than as enemies. Such
an expedition would inevitably arouse the active hos-
tility of Mexico and provoke an invasion on the west-
ern frontier. Houston took up the arguments of the
advocates of the expedition, one after another, and
answered them. Coming to the speech of Isaac Yan
Zandt, who had spoken in a very "high-falutin "
style, he used one of those familiar illustrations
which were a feature of his command over a fron-
tier audience. He said, "A Tennessee neighbor once
stationed his negro, Caesar, with a rifle at a deer
drive, and told him to shoot when the animal broke
cover. The deer sprang out, but the rifle made no
sound. When Caesar was cursed for not shooting,
he replied, 'Lord a mighty, massa, dat buck jump so
high, I think he break his own neck. ' So with my
LAMAR'S ADMINISTRATION 257
young friend Yan Zandt; lie jumps so liigh in his
speecli tliat lie breaks his own neck, and it is not
necessary to shoot at him." Houston's arguments
prevailed, and Congress refused to authorize the ex-
pedition.
Lamar, however, persisted, and took the authority
which Congress had refused to grant him. He or-
dered the Secretary of War to issue arms for the
troops, and the brass six-pounder was stamped with
the conquering name of "Mirabeau B. Lamar." He
issued a proclamation to the people of New Mexico
inviting them to become citizens of the Republic of
Texas, and to acknowledge its laws. He attempted
to disguise the warlike purpose of the expedition by
announcing that no attempt would be made to subju-
gate the country, but only to establish friendly com-
mercial relations with the people in case they did not
wish to unite with Texas. Its military form was
only intended for defense against the Indians. The
expedition started from the neighborhood of Austin
June 1, 1841. It numbered about 270 soldiers with
a number of teamsters and traders, and three com-
missioners to treat with the people of New Mexico.
It was under the command of General Hugh McLeod,
and President Lamar bade it farewell with his usual
outburst of classical oratory. The expedition started
too late. It was oppressively hot, and the grass was
poor. The guides lost their way, provisions gave
out, and the party was harassed by hostile Indians.
As the expedition, after great suffering, approached
258 SAM HOUSTON
the border of New Mexico, a party on the strongest
horses was sent forward to procure relief and provi-
sions from the people whom they had come to con-
quer. They were made prisoners, and forwarded to
Governor Armigo at Santa Fe. Troops were sent
against the remainder of the exj^edition, who upon
false promises of safety and return home laid down
their arms and surrendered. The prisoners were
treated with great barbarity. Some of them were
shot for attempting to escape, and the others were
marched on foot to the City of Mexico, where they
were confined in the prisons or made to work with
the criminals on the public roads, until they were
finally released by the interposition of the foreign
ministers. So ended the scheme for the conquest of
New Mexico, which, beside its original loss, had a
very bad effect upon public opinion in the United
States. Jackson wrote to Houston, "The wild-goose
chase to Santa Fe was a very ill-judged affair, and
the surrender without the fire of a gun has lowered
the prowess of the Texans in the minds of the Mexi-
cans."
General James Hamilton had been appointed min-
ister to Great Britain and France. He concluded a
convention with Lord Palmerston for the recognition
of the independence of Texas, on the condition that
Texas would assume fl, 000, 000 of the debt due by
Mexico to the English bond-holders. The English
Anti-Slavery Society sent its formal protest to Lord
Palmerston, to which he replied with his usual civil
LAMAR'S ADMINISTRATION 259
insolence, and tlie official intimation that they were a
set of idiots. Daniel O'Connell announced his pur-
pose to interrogate the ministry on the matter, and
proposed a scheme for settling free negroes from the
British colonies in Texas under the protection of
Mexico. France followed the example of Great
Britain, and acknowledged the independence of
Texas, as did also Holland and Belgium. General
Hamilton had also been appointed a commissioner to
negotiate the five million loan, and attempted to ob-
tain the subscriptions of European bankers. He had
sanguine hopes of success at one time, and announced
that he had made arrangements with the house of
Lafitte and Company, of Paris, to open books for the
loan. The negotiations fell through, and their fail-
ure was charged to the adverse influence of M. Hu-
mann, the French Minister of Finance, who had been
prejudiced by M. de Saligny, the charge d'affaires in
Texas. M. de Saligny had withdrawn in dudgeon,
because of a quarrel with Mr. Bullock, an inn -keeper
of Austin, in which he considered that the Texan au-
thorities had not treated him with becoming respect.
It appears that Bullock's pigs intruded into the stable
and ate up the corn of M. de Saligny' s horses.
Saligny's servant killed one of the pigs, and Bullock
horsewhipped the servant. Saligny entered a com-
plaint against Bullock, and Bullock ordered him out
of his hotel. Saligny applied to the Secretary of
State for redress, and failing to get it left the coun-
try. This was the story to account for the failure of
260 SAM HOUSTON
the French loan, but probably the financial condition
and prospects of Texas were a more sufficient reason.
At any rate, General Hamilton completely failed with
the European capitalists, and Texas was spared the
additional burden of a loan which would probably
have been wasted in extravagance.
The finances of Texas sank to a frightful condition
under Lamar's administration. There was no rev-
enue except from the customs duties; but as these
were receivable in government money they simply
canceled so much indebtedness without bringing in
any available funds. The public land sales amounted
to practically nothing, and the sole resource was the
issue of the government promissory notes, called
"red-backs." These were issued of all denomina-
tions down to twelve and a half cents, and fell in
value until they were worth no more than two cents
on the dollar, or would not be received at all. It is
to the credit of the Texan government, and about
the sole financial folly which it did not commit, that
it did not attempt to make its notes legal tender, and
to compel their circulation under penalties of the law,
as was done later under the Southern Confederacy.
The public debt of Texas during Lamar's administra-
tion was increased by 14,855,215, as compared with
$190,000, the expenses during Houston's term, and
the condition of the country was one of financial
chaos.
During the last year of his term Lamar yielded
to the disappointment of his high-flown schemes
LAMAR'S ADMINISTRATION 261
and the load of complaint and obloquy, and obtained
permission from Congress to abdicate his functions
of government. The duties of his offi.ce were per-
formed by Vice-President Burnett. At one time, to-
ward the close of his administration, affairs became
so desperate, and Congress felt itself so helpless,
that the members proposed to abandon their places,
and go home. Houston made an eloquent speech
recalling them to their duty, and on his motion a
resolution was adopted "to adjourn until to-morrow
at the usual hour." During Lamar's administration
the seat of government was removed to a location on
the Colorado Kiver, selected by a commission for that
purpose, and a town laid out, which was named
Austin. At that time it was far beyond the line of
settlements and exposed to Indian attacks, so that
the members of the government were sometimes
obliged to take their turns at standing guard. The
principal redeeming feature to the Lamar regime was
the foundation given to a system of public education
by a grant of land for a university, and appropria-
tions of the public domain to each county for the
establishment of schools.
Houston was the centre of the political opposi-
tion to Lamar's administration, and the people were
divided into the "Houston" and " anti - Houston "
parties, which continued to be the politics of Texas
until it became a part of the United States, and, in-
deed, never entirely lost their power so long as he
lived. He was nominated for President, and be-
262 SAM HOUSTON
gan those camj)aigns of stump-speaking which were
afterward so marked a feature in the politics of
Texas, and such effective means for his retention of
power. In the election there were 11,531 votes cast.
Houston received 7415, to 3616 for David G. Burnett.
Edward Burleson was elected Vice-President. Hous-
ton was inaugurated for the second time on the 16th
of December, 1841.
In his message to Congress he said, "It seems that
we have arrived at a crisis which is neither cheering
for the present, nor flattering for the future." No
change had taken place in the attitude of Mexico.
Overtures had been made for the amicable adjust-
ment of the difficulties, but they had been rejected,
and he would not incur the degradation of further
advances. It would be well to encourage Mexican
citizens with the kindliest treatment so far as they
wished to engage in commerce with the citizens of
Texas, but there should be no interference with the
revolutions or disturbances in Mexico. It would
only exasperate the national enemy, while weakening
the resources of Texas. The relations with the In-
dians were in a very unsatisfactory condition. Im-
mense sums had been spent in fighting them, but
without good results. The erection of frontier posts
at suitable points, and the establishment of trading
stations protected by guards, would insure tranquil-
lity and a lucrative commerce, while just and equi-
table treaties would maintain a lasting peace. There
was not a dollar in the treasury, and the country was
SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 263
involved from ten to fifteen millions. " We are not
only without money, but without credit, and for want
of punctuality without character." It would be nec-
essary for Congress to totally suspend the redemption
of the liabilities. In order to carry on the govern-
ment it would be necessary to make a new issue of
paper money, not exceeding $350,000, to be received
at par for the government revenues. One million
acres in the newly acquired Cherokee country should
be specially set apart for the redemption of this issue.
Finally, retrenchment and the most absolute economy
should be established in the expenditure of the gov-
ernment.
Houston's first work was to carry out his recom-
mendations for economy. Upon his suggestion his
own salary was reduced from f 10, 000 to 15000, and
those of the other civil officers in the like proportion.
Many useless offices were abolished, and the most
rigid economy was exercised in every department.
All claims, even the most just and pressing, were
postponed, and all appropriations by Congress, ex-
cept those absolutely necessary to carry on the gov-
ernment, were vetoed. Among the claimants was
one Colonel Jonathan Bird, who had built a block-
house at Birdsville at his own expense for the protec-
tion of the frontier. He applied to Congress for
reimbursement. The members told him that his
claim was a just one, but that it would be useless for
them to pass a bill for his relief as the President
would veto it. They told him, however, that if he
264 SAM HOUSTON-
would see Houston, and get his approval, they would
vote the appropriation. Houston told him that his
claim ought to be paid, but that he could not approve
any demand on the treasury in its bankrupt condi-
tion. Said he, "If it would do you any good, colo-
nel, I would give you half my present fortune; but
my only possessions are a stud horse, who is eating
his head off in the stable, and a solitary gamecock,
without a hen to lay an egg.^^
The rigidity of Houston's economy is shown by
the fact that the payment from the treasury during
his three years' term only amounted to |417,175,
exclusive of $17,907 paid for the mail service and
the collection of taxes.
Houston immediately set to work to pacify the In-
dians. He sent commissioners to the various tribes
with messages of friendship, and to arrange treaties
of peace. They were successful in every instance,
and although there were occasional troubles, owing
to the encroachment of the settlers upon the Indian
country and the inevitable conflicts between the hos-
tile races, there was no general war with any Indian
tribe during the whole of his administration. Indi-
vidual hornets were flying about, but the whole nest
was not disturbed. Houston addressed the Indians
in their own style of language, with which he was
familiar, and with a figurative eloquence, which they
could appreciate. A number of his Indian "talks,"
as they were called, have been preserved. This is
one of them : —
SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 265
Executive Department,
Washington, October 13, 1842.
To THE Ked Beak and Chiefs of the Council:
My Brothers, — The patli between us is open ; it
has become white. We wish it to remain open, and
that it shall no more be stained with blood. The last
Council took brush out of our way. Clouds no
longer hang over us, but the sun gives life to our
footsteps. Darkness is taken away from us, and we
can look at each other as friends. I send councilors
with my talk. They will give it to you. Hear it,
and remember my words. I have never opened my
lips to tell a red brother a lie. My red brethren,
who know me, will tell you that my counsel has al-
ways been for peace; that I have eaten bread and
drank water with the red men. They listened to my
words, and were not troubled. A bad chief came in
my place, and told them lies, and did them much
harm. His counsel was listened to, and the people
did evil. His counsel is no more heard, and the peo-
ple love peace with their red brothers. You, too,
love peace ; and you wish to kill the buffalo for your
women and children. There are many in Texas, and
we wish you to enjoy them.
Your Great Father, and ours, of the United States,
wishes the red men and the people of Texas to be
brothers. He has written to me and told me that
you wanted peace, and would keep it. Because peace
was good we have listened to him. You, too, have
266 SAM HOUSTON
heard his wishes, and you know the wishes of the red
brothers on the Arkansas. Let us be like brothers,
and bury the tomahawk forever.
Bad men make trouble; they cannot be at peace,
but when the water is clear they will disturb it, and
make it muddy. The Mexicans have lately come to
San Antonio and brought war with them ; they killed
some of our people, and we killed and wounded many
of them. We drove them out of the country; they
fled in sorrow. If they come back again, they shall
no more leave our country, or it will be after they
have been taken prisoners. Their coming has dis-
turbed us, and for that reason I cannot go to the
Council to meet you, as I had intended. But my
friends that I send to you will tell you all things, and
make a treaty with you that I will look upon, and
rejoice at. You will counsel together. They will
bring me all the words that you speak to them. The
Great Spirit will hear the words that I speak to you,
and He will know the truth of the words that you
send to me. When truth is spoken his countenance
will rejoice, but before him who speaketh lies the
Great Spirit will place darkness, and will not give
light to his going. Let all the red men make peace;
let no man injure his brother; let us meet every year
in council that we may know the hearts of each other.
I wish some of the chiefs of my red brothers to come
and see me at Washington. They shall come in
peace, and none shall make them afraid.
The messenger from the Queen of England and the
SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 267
messenger from tlie United States are both in Texas,
and will be in Washington, if they are not sick.
They will be happy to see my brothers. If the Big
Musk is in the Council he has not forgotten my
words , and he knows my counsel was always that of
a brother; and that I never deceived my red bro-
thers, the Cherokees. They had much trouble and
sorrow brought upon them, but it was done by chiefs
whose counsel was wicked, and I was far off and
could not hinder the mischief that was brought upon
his people. Our great Council is to meet again
in one moon, and I will send a talk to our agent
at the trading house, who will send it to my red
brothers.
Let the war-whoop be no more heard in our
prairies. Let songs of joy be heard upon our hills.
In our valleys let there be laughter, and in our wig-
wams let the voices of our women and children be
heard. Let trouble be taken away far from us ; and
when our warriors meet together, let them smoke the
pipe of peace and be happy.
Your brother,
Sam Houston. /
Santa Anna had taken advantage of the popularity
which he had gained by his attack upon the French
in Vera Cruz to reorganize his party and depose
President Bustamente. The great majority of the
people of Mexico were bitterly opposed to the sur-
render of Texas, and Santa Anna felt compelled to
268 SAM HOUSTON
at least make a pretense of renewing the invasion.
A small body of troops under General Yasquez was
sent across the Rio Grande, and advanced upon San
Antonio, which they reached on March 6, 1842.
The small Texan garrison retreated, and the Mexi-
cans took possession of the town. They hoisted the
Mexican flag on the cathedral, but, after some plun-
dering, retreated without attempting to hold the
place. Similar raids by small forces were made at
the same time upon Refugio and Goliad. These
raids caused great excitement among the colonists,
and it was apprehended that they were the forerun-
ners of a more formidable invasion. The President
issued a proclamation calling out the citizens. A
force of 200 or 300 quickly gathered at San Antonio
under General Burleson, but found that the enemy
had retired. General Alexander Somerville was sent
to take command of the levies, which soon amounted
to about 3500 men. They were eager to pursue the
enemy across the Rio Grande, but Houston was soon
convinced that the advance of the Mexicans had been
merely a temporary raid, and decided against any
offensive war. He issued a proclamation forbidding
any advance without authority, and, while professedly
encouraging the war spirit, took effectual measures
to prevent any expedition into Mexico. After some
exhibitions of temper and insubordination the troops
were disbanded by General Burleson and returned
home.
The war between Houston and Santa Anna was
SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 269
carried on by paper missiles. Santa Anna issued a
public letter in reply to a proposition made by Gen-
eral Hamilton without authority from the Texan
government. General Hamilton had proposed that
Mexico should acknowledge the independence of
Texas for the payment of $5,000,000, and $200,000
in secret to the agents of the treaty. Santa Anna
was justifiably indignant at the proposed attempt at
bribery, which he denounced as an insult and an in-
famy. He declared that Mexico would never sur-
render her right to Texas, and would never desist
from war until she "had planted her eagle standard
on the banks of the Sabine." Houston replied with
a category of Santa Anna's acts of perfidy and false-
hood, and a somewhat disingenuous argument of the
peaceful character of the Santa Fe expedition. To
Santa Anna's threats of the conquest of Texas he re-
plied with vigorous emphasis : —
"But you declare that you will not relax your ex-
ertions until you have subjugated Texas; that you
' have weighed its possible value, ' and that you are
perfectly aware of the magnitude of the task which
you have undertaken; that you 'will not permit a
Colossus within the limits of Mexico ; ' that our title
is that of 'theft and usurpation; ' and that 'the honor
of the Mexican nation ' demands of you 'the reclama-
tion of Texas; ' that 'if it were an unproductive de-
sert, useless, sterile, yielding nothing desirable and
abounding only in thorns to wound the feet of the
traveler, you would not permit it to exist as an inde-
270 SAM HOUSTON
pendent government, in derision of your national
character, your hearths, and your individuality.'
Allow me to assure you that our title to Texas has a
high sanction, — that of purchase, because we have
performed our conditions; that of conquest, because
we have been victorious; it is ours because you can-
not subdue us ; it has been consecrated ours by the
blood of martyred patriots ; it is ours by the claims
of patriotism, superior intelligence, and unsubduable
courage. It is not a sterile waste or a desert. It is
the home of freemen, it is the land of promise, it is
the garden of flowers. Every citizen of Texas was
born a freeman, and he would die a recreant to the
principles imbibed from his ancestry if he would not
freely peril his life in defense of his home, his liberty,
and his country."
He concluded, "Ere the banner of Mexico shall
triumphantly float on the banks of the Sabine, the
Texan standard of the single star, borne by the
Anglo-Saxon race, shall display its bright folds in
Liberty's triumph on the Isthmus of Darien."
The war fever continued to rage, and the demand
for offensive operations against Mexico was so strong
that the President called a special session of Con-
gress, which met at Houston on June 27. In his
message he alluded to the public threats of Santa
Anna, and said that "it was not for us to act on the
supposition that they were merely intended to give
him temporary popularity at home." He did not be-
lieve that a formidable invasion would be attempted.
SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 271
but it was evident that the enemy would continue to
annoy the frontier. He had heretofore been opposed
to offensive measures, but the question was whether
they were not now necessary. He left it for Con-
gress to decide. The war fever prevailed in Con-
gress. It passed an act appointing Houston to the
command of the army with dictatorial powers, and
appropriating ten millions of acres of the public
domain for war purposes. Houston vetoed it in a
message declaring that it was contrary to his princi-
ples to accept the powers of a military dictator, and
that the country had no means whatever for carrying
on the war against a powerful nation. It was as-
serted by the enemies of Houston that his self-deny-
ing declaration was a piece of popular clap-trap, and
his whole conduct in the affair a specimen of his "In-
dian cunning." They declared that he had consulted
with the members of Congress in regard to the details
of the bill which he vetoed, and that he had created
the demand for the dictatorship in order to refuse it.
During the fortnight which passed before the publi-
cation of his veto, great turbulence prevailed, and
there were threats of violence and assassination.
Houston was warned by his friends to have a protect-
ing guard, but his house was open as usual, and the
voice of his young wife could be heard at the piano
in the evening through the open windows, while knots
of desperate men were gathered to curse and threaten
him. Whether Houston played a political trick in
regard to the dictatorship or not, he undoubtedly
272 SAM HOUSTON
showed great practical sagacity in refusing to allow
the country to undertake the invasion of Mexico
without means, and with only an undisciplined army
of volunteers.
In March, 1842, Houston proclaimed a blockade
of the Mexican coast. The Mexican navy had been
destroyed in the harbor of Vera Cruz by the French
fleet, and the Texan vessels could command the Gulf.
They had been cruising off the coast of Yucatan with-
out accomplishing anything for themselves or the
insurgents. The insurgent government of Yucatan
had agreed to pay their expenses, but nothing was
received from it. The crews were unpaid and the
vessels out of repair when they returned from their
cruise. They were sent to New Orleans to refit, but
there was no money to pay the bills, and the vessels
were given in pawn as security. Houston sent orders
to Commodore Moore to sail for Galveston, but he
refused to do so until the debts, for which he had
given his personal pledge were paid. At a secret
session of Congress in January, 1843, it was decided
to sell the vessels, and commissioners were sent to
take possession of them. The commodore refused to
deliver them up, and sailed for Campeachy on an
appeal for aid, and the promise of a subsidy by the
Yucatan government, which was being besieged in
that place. Houston issued a proclamation declaring
Moore's operations to be piratical, and requesting
foreign navies to seize the vessels and deliver them
up. Moore succeeded in relieving the siege of Cam-
SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 273
peachy by driving the Mexican vessels from the
harbor and cannonading the land batteries. He
returned to Galveston, and a paper war ensued be-
tween him and the President. The people of Gal-
veston were indignant at the action of Congress in
ordering the sale of the navy, and the act was re-
pealed. The vessels were laid up, and remained
useless until they were turned over to the United
States, after annexation. The whole conduct of the
navy, like that of the army, showed the utter want
of subordination which existed among the volunteer
adventurers, and the difficulty which Houston had in
maintaining any regulation or authority.
During the excitement of the apprehended inva-
sion, Houston, who had been opposed to the change
of the capitol to Austin, removed the government to
Houston, and afterward to the town of Washington
on the Brazos. This excited great indignation among
the citizens of Austin, and they refused to permit the
removal of the archives. Houston sent messengers
for them, but the citizens shaved the manes and tails
of their horses, and drove them off with contumely.
On the 20th of December, 1842, Houston disj)atched
a company of armed men with wagons to bring off
the archives by force. As they were loading the
boxes into the wagons at the Land Office, the citizens
gathered, and a cannon was trained on the building.
It was touched off by a Mrs. Eberly, the Amazonian
keeper of a hotel in the town, but, fortunately, no
one was injured by the discharge. The company
274 SAM HOUSTON
started with their wagons, but were overtaken and
surrounded by the citizens at their camp at Brushy
Creek, about eighteen miles from Austin. The com-
pany was compelled to surrender and haul the boxes
back to Austin. Houston complained to Congress of
this insubordination, but nothing was done about it,
and the boxes remained at Austin.
Disturbances broke out in 1842 on the old "neu-
tral ground" in Eastern Texas among the settlers
themselves. A strong element of desperadoes and
criminals remained among the people. Forged land
titles and squatters' claims furnished the cause of the
disturbance. The courts were powerless to enforce
claims under the laws, and the citizens formed them-
selves into a band, calling themselves the "Regula-
tors," to carry out their own ideas of justice by the
bullet and the lash. The opposite party organized
under the name of the "Moderators," and the whole
section was involved in a bitter and vindictive neigh-
borhood war. Appeals were made by the peaceable
citizens to Houston to suppress it. He ordered out
a force of militia under General Smith, who marched
to Shelby County, and found the two parties drawn
up in battle array. He persuaded them to disperse
without fighting, and the troubles were quieted in a
measure. But the private warfare lasted for some
years, and the squatters contintied to hold their lands
by the title of the rifle.
In September, 1843, the Mexicans made a more
serious raid across the Rio Grande. General Adrian
SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 275
WoU entered San Antonio with a force of 1200 men.
It was a surprise, and the Mexicans took the mem-
bers of the district court prisoners. The militia ral-
lied at Gonzales under the command of Captain Mat-
thew Caldwell, known as "Old Paint," and advanced
to attack the Mexicans with about eighty men. Cap-
tain John C. Hays, the famous Texan Banger, was
sent forward with a small party to draw a sally from
the town. General WoU came out with 200 cavalry
and 600 infantry, and a battle took place on the
Salado Creek. It lasted until sunset, when the
Mexicans retreated into the town. A party of fifty
Texans, under Captain Nicholas Dawson, in attempt-
ing to join Caldwell, were surrounded on the prairie
by the Mexicans, who kept out of the range of their
rifles, but fired upon them with a cannon, until they
were compelled to surrender. The prisoners were all
butchered after their surrender, and only one of the
party succeeded in making his escape by killing a
cavalry man with his own lance, and dashing off on
his horse. General WoU retired from San Antonio
on the 18th, taking with him his prisoners and plun-
der. He was pursued by Caldwell, whose force had
increased to 400 or 500 men, but the report of a rein-
forcement to WoU, under General Ampudia, pre-
vented Caldwell from attacking him.
This raid again renewed the excitement and the
demand for offensive operations against Mexico.
Houston was once more compelled to cater to the war
spirit. He issued a proclamation on September 16,
276 SAM HOUSTON
announcing that tlie Texan troops would cross the
Rio Grande, and calling upon the levies to muster at
San Antonio. General Somerville was again given
the command, probably with secret instructions not
to attempt any serious invasion. Troops gathered at
San Antonio in an ill- supplied and insubordinate con-
dition, and after several weeks of waiting a consid-
erable number of them went home. On November
18, Somerville set out on his march with 750 men,
and reached Laredo December 6. He moved down
the river, instead of crossing it. His troops were
convinced that he had no serious purpose, and became
insubordinate. About 200 left him and returned
home. Somerville crossed the river with the rest,
and took possession of Guerrero. From that place
he recrossed the river and informed his army that he
intended to return to Gonzales. About 800 men re-
fused to return. They elected Colonel William S.
Fisher as their commander, and determined to invade
Mexico on their own account. They made an attack
on the town of Mier on the night of the 23d, and
entered it. During the engagement for the posses-
sion of the town the next day the Texans were per-
suaded to surrender by false representations of the
arrival of Mexican reinforcements, and on the promise
that they should not be sent into Mexico. The
promise was violated, and they were marched as pris-
oners toward the City of Mexico. They rose on their
guards at the Hacienda del Salado, about eighteen
miles beyond Saltillo, and made their escape. Un-
SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 211
fortunately, they deserted tlie road and took refuge
in tlie mountains, where they lost their way and were
worn out by hardships and want of food. They were
tracked down by parties of the soldiery, and all but
four recaptured. Every tenth man of the prisoners
was shot by order of Santa Anna for their attempt to
escape, and Captain Ewan Cameron, the leader of
the revolt, who had escaped drawing the black bean
in the death lottery, was afterward ordered to be
shot. The prisoners were confined in the fortress
of Perote near Jalapa. General Thomas Jefferson
Green and a few others escaped by tunneling through
the wall, and the rest were eventually released at the
interposition of the foreign ministers.
A sort of predatory expedition took place the same
year. It was an attempt to capture a train loaded
with Mexican goods on its way from Independence,
Missouri, to Santa Fe. Captain Jacob S. Snively
started in the fall of 1843 with about 150 men to
capture the train in the region south of the Arkansas,
which was claimed to be Texas territory. The train
was escorted by a force of United States cavalry,
under the command of Colonel Philip St. George
Cooke, who obtained information of Snively's design.
He informed Snively that he was trespassing on the
territory of the United States, and compelled him
to surrender. His party was partially disarmed and
rendered harmless for mischief. A part accompanied
Cooke's cavalry to Independence and a part returned
home, having suffered somewhat in skirmishes with
278 SAM HOUSTON
the Indians on the way. It was an error on the part
of Houston to have authorized such an expedition.
On October 13, 1842, President Houston sent a
dignified and forcible appeal to the governments of
the United States, Great Britain, and France to in-
terpose with Mexico, and require that either she
should recognize the independence of Texas, or make
war upon her in a civilized manner. He pointed out
that no serious attempt at invasion had been made
for the past six years, and that the war had only been
carried on by predatory raids and by inciting the In-
dians to massacre. He said : —
"If Mexico believes herself able to subjugate this
country, her right to make the effort to do so is not
denied, for, on the contrary, if she chooses to invade
our territory for that purpose the President, in the
name of the people of all Texas, will bid her wel-
come. It is not against a war with Mexico that
Texas would protest. This she deprecates not. She
is willing at any time to stake her existence as a na-
tion upon the issue of a war conducted on Christian
principles. It is alone against the unholy, inhuman,
and fruitless character it has assumed and still main-
tains, which violates every rule of honorable warfare,
every precept of religion, and sets at defiance even
the common sentiments of humanity, against which
she protests, and invokes the interposition of those
powerful nations which have recognized her indepen-
dence."
This appeal received the approval of Sir Kobert
SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 279
Peel and M. Guizot. Lord Aberdeen, the British
Minister of Foreign Affairs, offered to mediate with
Mexico for a cessation of hostilities, but declined to
act jointly with the United States, on the ground
that the latter 's relations with Mexico were not suffi-
ciently friendly to justify expectations of any good
results from her interference. Under the convention
arranged by General Hamilton, the British minister
to Mexico had been instructed to proffer a mediation
which had been categorically refused by the Mexican
government. This offer was now renewed, but with
no better apparent success. In the mean time, the
efforts for annexation had been revived in the United
States. On June 6, 1843, President Houston sent
a dispatch to Minister Van Zandt at Washington,
directing him to withdraw the application of Texas
for annexation to the United States. In further dis-
patches, which were doubtless intended to be shown
to the members of the United States government and
to leading men in Congress, he communicated the
facts of the friendly proffers made by European
governments, and intimated that by an alliance with
them Texas would be relieved from the necessity of
desiring annexation to the United States. President
Tyler was strongly in favor of annexation, and opened
negotiations with Houston to induce him to renew the
application. The Mexican minister to the United
States announced in August that any act of annexa-
tion by Congress would be considered a declaration
of war. Houston demanded to know if the United
280 SAM HOUSTON
States could be depended upon to protect Texas from
invasion while the negotiations were going on. Sec-
retary Upshur did not answer this question, but
stated that the Senate had been canvassed, and that
there was an assurance of the necessary two thirds
who would vote to ratify the treaty. Houston then
applied to Colonel William S. Murphy, the United
States diplomatic agent in Texas, and was assured
that the United States would not permit the interfer-
ence of Mexico or any other power while the negotia-
tions were pending. Houston accepted this as suffi-
cient, and appointed J. Pinkney Henderson as a
special commissioner to Washington to renew the
application for the treaty. He also sent a secret
message to the Texan Congress, informing it of what
he had done, and requesting its approval. During
these negotiations Houston wrote several important
letters, doubtless intended to affect 23ublic sentiment
in the United States. On February 16, 1844, he
wrote to Jackson, pointing out the advantages in
trade and security which Texas would secure by
maintaining her independence, but declaring himself
in favor of annexation. His desire for peace and a
settled order outweighed all other considerations. He
said : —
"I have no desire to see war renewed again in
Texas. It is not the apprehension of personal danger
that would alarm me, but rather the deleterious in-
fluence which it has upon our population. The revo-
lution has already introduced into Texas more wicked
SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 281
and ambitious men than could be desired in our pres-
ent condition. In armies and camps such men have
an opportunity of extending their acquaintance, and
deriving some prominence from associations which
totally disqualifies them from usefulness in a peace-
ful community. Unwilling to embark in the useful
avocations of life, in many instances they become
restless demagogues or useless loafers. They are
either ready to consume the substance which they
have not earned, or to form combinations unfavorable
to good order and the administration of the laws.
Peace in Texas would relieve us from such people,
and in the absence of their baleful influence give to
society a vigorous constitution and healthy complex-
ion. All the evils which we have experienced have
resulted from such characters, and unless we have
peace permanently established among us we cannot
tell when a September election might not submerge
the country to the misrule of such men for three
years.
"Furthermore, I wish to reside in a land where all
will be subordinate to law, and where none dare to
defy its mandates. I have arrived at that period of
life when I desire retirement and assurance that what-
ever I possess will be secured to me by just laws
wisely administered. That privilege I would deem a
rich requital for whatever I may have performed use-
ful in life. With it I would be happy to retire from
all cares of public station, and live in the enjoyment
of the reflection that, if I had been serviceable to any
282 SAM HOUSTON
portion of mankind, their prosperity and happiness
were ample recompense. I would give no thought to
what the world might say of me when I could trans-
mit to posterity the reputation of an honest man."
In conclusion he said : —
"Now, my venerated friend, you will perceive that
Texas is presented to the United States as a bride
adorned for her espousal. But if, now so confident
of the union, she should be rejected, her mortification
would be indescribable. She has been sought by the
United States, and this is the third time she has con-
sented. Were she now to be spurned it would for-
ever terminate expectation on her part, and it would
then not only be left for the United States to expect
that she would seek some other friend, but all Chris-
tendom would justify her in a choice dictated by ne-
cessity and sanctioned by wisdom. However adverse
this might be to the wishes or the interest of the
United States, in her present situation she could not
ponder long. The course of the United States, if it
stop short of annexation, will displease France, irri-
tate England, and exasperate Mexico. An effort to
postpone it to a more convenient season may be tried
in the United States to subserve party purposes and
make a President. Let them beware. I take it that
it is of too great magnitude for any imj)ediment to be
opposed to its execution. That you may live to see
your hopes in relation to it crowned with complete
success, I sincerely desire. In the event that it
speedily takes place, I hope that it will afford me an
SECOND TERM AS PRESIDENT 283
opportunity of again visiting you at the Hermitage
with my family. It is our ardent desire to see the
day when you can lay your hand on our little boy's
head, and bestow upon him your benediction."
In May, he wrote to Minister Murphy a letter,
which shows his enlarged views of the future of Texas
as an independent power, and of the possibilities of
the creation of a great and rival empire in the West.
It was not a wild and extravagant vision, and might
have been accomplished but for the annexation of
Texas and the subsequent acquisition of California
by the United States. He said : —
"If faction or a regard for present party advan-
tages should defeat the measure, you may depend
upon one thing, and that is, that the glory of the
United States has already culminated. A rival
power will soon be built up, and the Pacific, as well
as the Atlantic, will be component parts of Texas in
thirty years from this date. The Oregon region in
geographical affinity will attach to Texas. By this
coalition or union the barrier of the Rocky Moun-
tains will be dispensed with or obviated. England
and France in such an event would not be so tena-
cious on the subject of Oregon as if the United
States were to be the sole possessor of it. When
such an event would take place, or in anticipation of
such a result, all the powers which either envy or
fear the United States would use all reasonable exer-
tion to build us up as the only rival power which
can ever exist on this continent to that of the United
284 SAM HOUSTON
States. Considering our origin, their speculation
may seem chimerical and that such things cannot
take place. A common origin has its influence so
long as common interests exist, but no longer. . . .
The union of Oregon and Texas will be much more
natural and convenient than for either separately to
belong to the United States. This, too, would place
Mexico at the mercy of such a power as Oregon and
Texas would form ; such an event may appear fanci-
ful to many, but I assure you that there are no Rocky
Mountains interposing to such a project. But one
thing can prevent its accomplishment, and that is
annexation. If you, or any statesman, will only
regard the map of North America, you will perceive
that from the forty-sixth degree of latitude north
there is the commencement of a natural boundary.
This will embrace Oregon, and from thence south, on
the Pacific coast, to the twenty-ninth or thirtieth de-
gree south latitude will be a natural and convenient
extent of sea-land. I am free to admit that most of
the province of Chihuahua, Sonora, and Upper and
Lower California, as well as Santa Fe, which we now
claim, will have to be brought into the connection
with Texas and Oregon. This, you will see by ref-
erence to the map, is no bugbear to those who will
reflect upon the achievement of the Anglo-Saxon
people. . . . You need not estimate the population
which is said or reputed to occupy the vast territory
embraced between the twenty-ninth and forty-sixth
degrees of latitude on the Pacific. They will, like
ANNEXATION 285
the Indian race, yield to the advance of the North
American population. The amalgamation, under the
advisement of statesmen, cannot fail to produce the
result in producing a united government formed of
and embracing the limits suggested. It may be
urged that these matters are remote. Be it so.
Statesmen are intended by their forecast to regulate
and arrange matters in such sort as will give direction
to events by which the future is to be benefited or
prejudiced. You may fully rely, my friend, that
future ages will profit by these facts, while we will
only contemplate them in prospective. They must
come. It is impossible to look on the map of North
America and not perceive the rationale of the pro-
ject."
Before Jackson had received Houston's letter he
had written on February 13 a letter expressing his
strong desire for the annexation of Texas. It was
kept secret for political reasons by the Democratic
conspirators, headed by Calhoun, who were op23osed
to the nomination of Van Buren. It was believed
that both Van Buren and Clay had come to an under-
standing by which they hoped to eliminate the Texas
question from the coming election, in which they
expected to be the candidates of their respective par-
ties. The question had excited a bitter controversy,
and each one feared that it would cost him vital
votes. Clay wrote a letter, April 11, in which he
declared that the annexation of Texas would be cer-
tain to bring on a war with Mexico, and endanger
286 SAM HOUSTON
the safety of the Union. Van Buren also published
a letter expressing his belief that the annexation of
Texas would be followed by a war with Mexico, and
that in such an event the United States would not be
justified in the eyes of the world. The treaty was
submitted to the Senate with a message from Presi-
dent Tyler advocating what he termed the re-annexa-
tion of Texas. The controversy raged in the country
and in Congress, but the influence of these two great
leaders upon their respective parties was sufficient to
secure rejection. The treaty was rejected on June 5
by a vote of thirty -five to sixteen.
As soon as the treaty was definitely rejected by the
United States the British government acted. Lord
Aberdeen proposed to Ashbell Smith, the Texan
minister to Great Britain and France, a "diplomatic
act" in which five powers. Great Britain, France,
the United States, Texas, and Mexico should be in-
vited to join. Its purpose was to secure peace be-
tween Texas and Mexico and the permanent inde-
pendence of the former, Texas giving a formal pledge
not to unite with any other nation. France agreed
to join with Great Britain in the "act," and the three
powers were to compel the assent of Mexico. The
refusal of the United States was expected. Houston,
who had been absent from the seat of government for
some time, sent instructions to Anson Jones, Secre-
tary of State, to close with the offer of Great Britain
and France. Jones, who was then President-elect,
disobeyed the order, and, instead, sent leave of ab-
ANNEXATION 287
sence to Minister Smith. Why Houston permitted
this is an unsolved problem, but it is possible that he
was willing that Jones, who was then his friend and
a political protege, should have the distinction of
concluding the treaty. At that time Houston and
Jones were both regarded as opposed to annexation,
and the majority of the people of Texas agreed with
them, considering that the action of the United States
had rendered it hopeless.
In the mean time independent negotiations had been
going on for an armistice and a treaty of peace with
Mexico. The ex-provisional Lieutenant-Governor,
J. W. Robinson, who had been among the prisoners
captured at San Antonio by General Woll, had ad-
dressed a communication to Santa Anna from the
prison of Perote, proposing, if he was released, to go
to Texas, and arrange the terms of a treaty by which
Texas would acknowledge the sovereignty of Mexico,
on condition that she should have a separate govern-
ment. The proposition, which was probably made
for no other purpose than to secure his own release,
was accepted. Santa Anna's communication, which
was addressed to "Mr." Houston and claimed Texas
to be a province of Mexico, was of course rejected.
But in it Mexico had expressed a willingness to
suspend hostilities. An armistice was agreed upon
throuo'h the mediation of the British minister, and
commissioners were appointed on the part of Presi-
dent Houston and General Woll, to arrange for an
exchange of prisoners, pending negotiations for a per-
288 SAM HOUSTON
mauent peace. They agreed upon the terms of an
armistice to last until May 1, and the agreement was
signed on February 15. It was rejected by Houston
on the ground that it referred to Texas as a province
of Mexico. No acts of hostility followed, although
General WoU notified Houston that the war was re-
newed.
Jones was inaugurated President on the 1st of De-
cember, 1844. In his last message to Congress Hous-
ton had the pleasure of announcing that his measures
of economy had resulted in the solvency of the trea-
sury. The expenses of the government had been met.
The total cost of his administration during the three
years had been only $416,058, and there was a bal-
ance in the treasury of $5058. The Exchequer bills,
with some fluctuations, had appreciated nearly to par,
and the revenues of the country were on a sound and
stable basis. Of all Houston's services to Texas
none was more important than his firm and judicious
economy, and its rescue from the danger of the abso-
lute collapse of the government from the extravagance
and wild financial schemes of the preceding adminis-
tration. In his valedictory address he said in regard
to annexation, "The United States have spurned
Texas twice already. Let her therefore firmly main-
tain her position as it is, and work out her own politi-
cal salvation. Let her legislation proceed upon the
principle that we are to be and to remain an inde-
pendent people. If Texas goes begging again for
admission to the United States, she will only de-
ANNEXATION 289
grade herself. . . . If we remain an independent na-
tion our territory will become extensive — unlimited."
The knowledge of the "diplomatic act" and the
apprehension that Texas would be bound to Great
Britain and France by their guarantee of her in-
dependence aroused the alarm and jealousy of the
United States. Public sentiment turned decidedly
in favor of annexation. Van Bur en was defeated in
the Democratic Convention, and James K. Polk was
nominated as an avowed advocate of annexation.
Clay endeavored to satisfy public opinion by declar-
ing that he was in favor of annexation if it could be
accomplished without war, but Polk was elected by
a small majority in the Electoral College. On Feb-
ruary 14, a joint resolution was adopted by both
Houses of Congress for the admission of Texas into
the Union. President Herrera, of Mexico, who had
been elected by the Liberal party, agreed to a treaty
by which Mexico consented to acknowledge the inde-
pendence of Texas, on condition that she would not
become annexed to any other power. The United
States government became exceedingly anxious.
Special agents were sent to make all sorts of promises
to the people, and the old war feeling was stirred up
by intimations of aggressive movements against Mex-
ico. Lamar, and the other ambitious leaders who
had been opposed to annexation, now strongly favored
it, and it was even proposed to overthrow the govern-
ment on the ground of President Jones's supposed
opposition to the measure. Houston, who was a
/
290 SAM HOUSTON
friend of Jones, although they afterward quarreled
bitterly, lent his strong personal influence to the sup-
port of the government. The proposition of Presi-
dent Herrera was made known to the people by proc-
lamation, and a convention was also called to take
action on the invitation of the United States. It
met in Austin on the 4th of July, 1845, and adopted
a resolution for annexation, which was submitted to
Congress for ratification. It was accepted with only
one dissentient vote, that of Richard Bache, a grand-
son of Benjamin Franklin. The convention framed
a state constitution, which was accepted by the peo-
ple at a general election. October 14, Texas ceased
to be a Republic, and became one of the United
States.
Some question has been raised as to the sincerity
of Houston's desire for annexation. At the time he
was accused of having been bought by British gold,
and he was charged with treason with all the bitter-
ness of envenomed political animosity. There is no
reasonable doubt that Houston went to Texas for
the purpose of bisinging about its acquisition by the
United States, and with the knowledge and support of
Jackson. During the early years of the struggle for
independence annexation to the United States would
have settled the question in favor of Texas, and was
ardently desired by every man in it except those who
were blinded by wild schemes of ambition and im-
possible conquest. Houston was too shrewd and sen-
sible not to recognize its advantages. Nevertheless,
ANNEXATION 291
he was revolted by the opposition of a considerable
portion of the people of the United States, and by
the repeated refusals of its government. He came to
see the possibilities of a western empire to be founded
by and attached to Texas, and recognized that the
time had come when the United States must make a
definite choice. His patriotism and his pride would
not submit to further national humiliation. Ashbell
Smith, Secretary of State to President Jones, relates
this incident of Houston while the last negotiations
were pending, and before Congress had passed the
resolution for annexation : —
"He was leaving Washington on the Brazos one
morning in February, 1845. He came into my room,
booted, spurred, whip in hand. Said he, 'Saxe
Weimar [the name of his saddle-horse] is at the
door, saddled. I have come to leave Houston's last
words with you. If the Congress of the United
States shall not by the 4th of March pass some mea-
sure of annexation that Texas can with honor accede
to, Houston will take the stump against annexation
for all time to come. ' When he wished to be em-
phatic he spoke of himself by name, Houston, in the
third person. Without another word, embracing
after his fashion, he mounted his horse and left."
So far as Houston's personal ambition was con-
cerned, it undoubtedly would have been favored by
annexation. He was debarred from being again
President of the Republic by the constitutional lim-
itation. He would naturally and inevitably be one
292 SAM HOUSTON
of the Senators of the new State in Congress, with a
fresh career open before him and the possibility of a
still wider ambition in the Presidency of the United
States. He was prepared to sacrifice this rather than
endure another national affront, but he was undoubt-
edly rejoiced when annexation was accomplished on
honorable terms.
In his private life during his second term Houston
was enabled to establish a home and abandon some
of his manners of a reckless and freebooting frontiers-
man, as under the influence of his wife he had re-
formed his habits of drinking and swearing. He
still lived, however, in a primitive fashion. One of
the old settlers of Texas thus relates his first inter-
view with him: "I had come to Texas from Alabama,
and was at Washington on the Brazos, then the seat
of government, in 1843. One morning I was ap-
proached by Houston's negro boy Tom, who was his
cook and body-servant, with an invitation from the
President for me to dine with him that day. I was
then only about twenty years of age, and was natu-
rally a good deal flustered by the unexpected honor,
which I was unable to account for, as I had never
spoken to the President. The dinner was at one
o'clock. I found the President at the double log-
house which was his residence. He received me with
a kindly and hearty welcome, which put me at once
at my ease. The dinner consisted of wild turkey,
bread, and black coffee. Houston said that but for
the kindness of a neighbor, who had sent in the
ANNEXATION 293
bird, the dinner would have consisted of only bread
and coffee. He told me all about my family and
relatives in Tennessee, and in fact a great many
things that I did not know myself. His whole man-
ner and conversation were most gracious and friendly.
From that time I was always his devoted friend and
political follower." It was Houston's custom to ac-
quaint himseK with the antecedents of new-comers to
Texas as far as he could, and attach them to himseK
by friendly interest and hospitality. If, however,
they showed signs of rivalry or opposition to him, he
was apt to turn his tongue against them, and be as
harsh and sarcastic as he had before been friendly.
Mrs. M. H. Houston, a Scotch lady of wealth who
made a cruise in the Gulf of Mexico with her hus-
band in a yacht, and wrote a couple of books about
her travels in the United States, thus describes a visit
to Houston in 1844 : —
"The city of Houston is beautifully situated on
the banks of the Red River. The houses are built
entirely of wood, and the hotels are wretched. Our
chief end, however, was answered, for we received
a visit from the conqueror of San Jacinto and the
friend of the red man. As is invariably the case in
the introduction of Americans, either to one another,
or to foreigners, much shaking of hands, together
with considerable use of the monosyllable 'sir,' took
place between us and General Sam Houston, whose
costume is a happy mixture of the inevitable black
satin waistcoat (donned probably from a sense of con-
V
294 SAM HOUSTON
ventional respect for his British visitors) and a coarse,
blanket-like overcoat, which, having much the appear-
ance of green baize, is the ordinary covering of a
Texan gentleman. A wan and worn-looking man is
the President of the new Republic, and there are,
notwithstanding the shrewd and kindly expression of
his face, signs thereon that he has (more than his
many admirers like to think possible) deserved in his
day the sobriquet of 'Drunken Sam,' which was long
since bestowed upon him. He has been twice mar-
ried, having obtained — a thing easily done in Amer-
ica — a divorce from his first wife ; his second mar-
riage has, in one respect at least, proved of signal
advantage to him, for, thanks to the influence of
Madame la JPresidente, General Houston has es-
chewed the habits of drinking and using bad lan-
guage, in which he formerly indulged. He was what
I have heard called 'a fine swearer ' in days gone by;
but he has learned not only to govern men, but to
rule his tongue, which he has probably found to be
a far more difficult matter. Like most Americans
whom I have known, he is very proud of being able
to clearly prove his descent from an English, or
rather, in his case, from a Scotch family. He told
us that his forbears belonged in Lanarkshire, and
claimed cousinship with us at once. Never have I
seen a man who had 'done,' not alone the 'State,'
but the cause of humanity, such 'good service in his
day ' who was so simple and unobtrusive in his man-
ner, and who seemed to think so little of himself."
ANNEXATION 295
Houston endeavored to fulfill his purpose to visit
Jackson at the Hermitage with his family, after
annexation, but he only arrived a few hours after the
death of his "venerated friend," whom he held in
such affection and reverence.
CHAPTER XIV.
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES
Samuel Houston and Thomas J. Rusk were
elected Senators of the United States by the legis-
lature of Texas. Houston arrived in Washington
and took his seat as a member of the Twenty-Ninth
Congress March 30, 1846. It was the great era of
the American Senate. It had among its members
a larger number of distinguished and able statesmen
than it had before or has had since. There were the
great leaders, Webster, Clay, and Calhoun, the
scarcely less distinguished Thomas H. Benton, and
among the others, who had or were to, acquire a na-
tional fame, were Lewis Cass, John A. Dix, Daniel S.
Dickenson, Reverdy Johnson, Simon Cameron, Will-
iam Allen, Thomas Corwin, and Jesse D. Bright.
Houston's advent, from his romantic career and
achievements, attracted much attention, and he was
at once a marked, although a rather eccentric figure
in the Senate chamber. He continued his habit of
peculiarity in dress, wearing his broad-brimmed white
hat of soft fur, and draping himself in a cloak with a
red lining, or in a bright-colored Mexican blanket.
He provided himself with a supply of cypress shin-
gles, and filled his waste-basket during the debates
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 297
with the shavings that curled from under his sharp
knife.
Houston did not manifest any of that false mod-
esty which has created the custom that a new Senator
shall be silent during his first session, but at once
took his part in the debates. His first speech was
delivered just a fortnight after he had taken his seat.
It was on the question of the Oregon boundary. He
took strong grounds, in agreement with Benton, with
whom he allied himself, as the representative of the
old Union Democracy of Jackson, and in opposition
to Calhoun and the nuUifiers and disunionists, in
favor of the extreme claims of the United States to
the northern boundary. His speech was long, ram- ^^
bling, and discursive, and, if at times forcible in lan-
guage, indicated that he was not likely to take his
place among the leaders of the Senate in logical and
legal argument. The Southern members, under the
leadership of Calhoun, were not anxious for the ex-
tension of free territory at the North, and President
Polk, although he had been elected on the plat-
form of "54.40 or fight," was of a much less bel-
licose temper toward Great Britain than he had been
toward Mexico. The motion for which Houston
spoke, to give notice of the termination of the joint
occupancy of the Columbia River region, was passed
by a vote of forty to fourteen, but the question was
finally settled, after some not very forcible diplomacy
on the part of the United States, by a compromise on
the boundary of 49°.
298 SAM HOUSTON
The war with Mexico had been begun before Hous-
ton's arrival by the advance of General Taylor's
troops upon the Eio Grande, Houston favored the
war, at least after it had been commenced, and had
always extreme views in regard to the incorporation
of Mexican territory into the United States. He was
a member of the Committee on Military Affairs, and
was, naturally, a good deal consulted in regard to the
operations against Mexico. It is charged that he
prevented the appointment of General Albert Sidney
Johnston to an important command, on account of
their old differences in the affairs of Texas, and
he doubtless had virtual control of the commissions
issued to Texan officers. He reported a resolution
for a vote of thanks to the soldiers engaged in the
battle of Buena Vista, and for a medal to General
Taylor. He was in favor of the vigorous prosecution
of the war, and in the Thirtieth Congress supported
the bill for the three millions extra credit to carry
it on, which was defeated. He made an elaborate
speech, in which he defended the character of the
settlers in Texas, who had been attacked during the
debate, and set forth the claims of Texas to the terri-
tory of New Mexico, east of the Rio Grande, under
the old Spanish and French treaties. He defended
President Polk from the charge of having brought on
the war, and argued in favor of giving him a vigorous
support. He was strenuous in the advocacy of the
claims of Texas, and made a strong speech in favor
of incorporating the Texan navy into that of the
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 299
United States, about whicli there had been some diffi-
culty, which was finally settled by an appropriation
for the pay of the Texan officers for four years, on
the condition that they would relinquish their claims
to positions in the navy of the United States. He
offered a resolution for the establishment of a protec-
torate over Yucatan, as he did at a later period one
for a protectorate over all Mexico. It was in accord-
ance with his views for the extension of the terri-
tory of the United States to the Isthmus of Darien,
but it fortunately received little attention. What-
ever may be the opinion in regard to "manifest des-
tiny," the adoption of such a scheme at that time
would have involved the United States in difficulties
and responsibilities of the most serious character, and
have been a source of great trouble and weakness.
These views did not accord with the usual practical
sagacity of Houston, but rather with the filibuster
spirit of the earlier adventurers in Texas, whom he
had always opposed.
Houston's most important action and speech, which
fixed the plan in relation to the extension of slavery
that he ever afterward maintained, were on the bill
for the establishment of the territorial government
of Oregon. The bill contained a provision prohibit-
ing the establishment of slavery, in accordance with
the ordinance of 1787 in regard to the Northwest
Territory. This was denounced by Callioun, who de-
clared that Congress had no right to prohibit slavery
in a Territory, and openly threatened disunion in
300 SAM HOUSTON
case his doctrine was not accepted. Houston followed
Benton in a vigorous reply. He said that he had
heard the cry of disunion and nullification before.
That cry had reached him in the wilderness when
an exile from kindred and friends and sections.
But it had rung in his ears, and wounded his heart.
Now, however, he was in the midst of such a cry,
and he was bound to act as a man conscious of the
solemn responsibility imposed upon him. He had
heard the menaces and threats of dissolution and dis-
union until he had become familiar with them, and
they had now ceased to produce alarm in his bosom.
He had no fear of the dissolution of the Union, when
he recollected how it had been established and how it
had been defended. Mr. Calhoun and Mr. Butler, of
South Carolina, both interrupted Houston's speech.
Calhoun denied that the South had threatened to
dissolve the Union. Mr. Butler wanted to know if
the holding of a Southern convention was treason.
Houston replied, "Certainly not." The South could
hold all the conventions it pleased, but he would
never go into one. He knew neither North nor
South. He knew only the Union. Houston's course
produced great anger and excitement among the ex-
treme Southerners. He and Benton were denounced
by name as traitors at public meetings in South Caro-
lina. But there appears to have been no disapproval
of his action at that time among the people of Texas.
The large slave-holding element had not become es-
tablished among the settlers, and they were fresh in
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 301
their loyalty to the Union. It was not until the
social and political conditions had been changed that
the fire-eaters and disunionists gained the control.
In the next Congress in 1849, under the adminis-
tration of President Taylor, Houston declared him-
self in favor of the admission of California as a free
State. The Southern leaders were greatly excited at
the prospect of the loss of the territory for which
they had caused the Mexican war. An address was
issued for a convention at Nashville to consider the
threatened rights and interests of the South. Hous-
ton refused to sign the address, and ridiculed the
convention. He declared that it was a piece of ridic-
ulous flummery, and that ex-Governor Henderson
was the sole representative from Texas in it, and
" self -constituted at that." The slavery question was
continually coming up in every form. On a resolu-
tion to invite Father Mathew, the eminent Irish
apostle of temperance, to a seat on the floor of the
Senate, objection was made that he had signed a
petition against slavery with Daniel O'Connell.
Houston supported the resolution, and expressed his
profound contempt for the attempt to drag slavery
into the question of temperance. At that time Hous-
ton had wholly conquered his habits of indulgence in
liquor. He said, "I am a disciple of the advocates
of temperance. I needed the discipline of reforma-
tion, and I embraced it. I am proud on this floor to
proclaim it, sir. I would enforce the example upon
every American heart that influences or is influenced
302 SAM HOUSTON
by filial affection, conjugal love, or parental tender-
ness."
The question of the extent of the boundary of
Texas to the north on the Rio Grande, and the claim
of the State to a considerable portion of the territory
of New Mexico, was renewed by the result of the
Mexican war. The United States troops under Gen-
eral Kearney had taken possession of New Mexico,
and, after the territory had been ceded to the United
States by the treaty of Guadalupe Hidalgo, Texas
attempted to exercise jurisdiction over it. The leg-
islature passed an ordinance making it a judicial dis-
trict, and Judge Beard was sent to hold courts in the
territory. By order of President Taylor, Colonel
Monroe, the commandant of the United States troops,
forbade Judge Beard to exercise his functions, and
ordered an election for a territorial delegate to Con-
gress. Houston defended the claim of Texas in an
elaborate speech, and attacked Taylor for his uncom-
plimentary references in his reports to the disorders
among the Texan volunteers during the Mexican war.
The question at one time assumed a somewhat serious
phase, as Governor Wood threatened to call out the
militia of Texas to take possession of the country.
But he thought better of it when he was informed by
President Taylor that they would be repelled by
force, and that he would go to the scene of distur-
bance himself, if necessary. Mr. Clay in his famous
compromise measures included a provision for the
settlement of the claim of Texas to New Mexico by
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 303
the payment of a sum of money for the canceling of
the debts of Texas, for which the customs revenues
had been pledged. In order to avoid a continuance
of the trouble this portion of the compromise measure
was adopted first. Senator Pearce, of Maryland, in-
troduced a bill fixing the boundaries of Texas and
New Mexico, as they now stand, and providing for
the payment of 110,000,000 to Texas. Of this sum
$5,000,000 was to be reserved for the payment of the
debts of Texas upon claims filed and audited in the
United States treasury. There was a strong disposi-
tion in the Texas legislature to reject the proposition,
on the ground of the provision compelling the pay-
ment of the public debt contracted by the Kepublic.
In the final disposition a portion of this was repu-
diated. The public debt, which amounted to 112,-
436,491, was scaled down to $6,827,278, by various
classifications allowing from twenty to seventy-five
cents on the dollar. It was claimed that this was a
just and even a generous adjustment, inasmuch as the
money had been received in some instances at only
two or three cents on the dollar, and there was the
usual talk about speculators and Shylocks, who had
taken advantage of the necessities of the deserving
creditors to obtain possession of the claims. It must
be admitted that the ostensible claims for a reduction
of the debt on account of the actual value received
were very forcible, and the example of Texas will com-
pare favorably with that of the United States after the
Revolutionary war, and of States like Mississippi and
304 SAM HOUSTON
Pennsylvania with much less temptation. Neverthe-
less, it was a violation of the bond, which would not
have been permitted on the part of any private debtor,
and not justifiable according to the strict letter of the
law. Houston defended the action of Texas in scaling
the debt in a speech in the Senate. In regard to the
relinquishment by Texas to the claim upon New
Mexico, he said in a speech at Galveston that "it
was the best sale ever made of land of a worthless
quality and a disputable title." At Houston's sug-
gestion the sum of 12,000,000 of the money, remain-
ing after the payment of the debt, was set apart for
a public school fund.
As the controversy raged and the excitement grew
hot over Clay's compromise bill, Houston offered a
resolution that a committee of six Senators be ap-
pointed to prepare an address for the purpose of
allaying the agitation, but it was not adopted. The
various measures embodied in the original bill, for
the admission of California as a free State, for the
creation of a territorial government in New Mexico
without reference to slavery, for the settlement of the
Texan boundary, for a fugitive slave law, and for the
abolition of the slave trade in the District of Colum-
bia, were finally adopted, one after another. The
fugitive slave law, in a more severe form as regards
the rights of the fugitives before the courts than as
reported by Mr. Clay, and a gross violation of com-
mon law, was passed August 26, only twelve Senators
voting against it. Houston voted for it, as he did
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 305
also for the abolition of the slave trade in the District
of Columbia. Although ten Senators from Southern
States signed a protest against the admission of Cali-
fornia as a free State "as a part of a policy which, if
persisted in, would lead to a dissolution of the Con-
federacy," and there were ominous signs of a growing
spirit of slave propagandism and resistance to na-
tional authority at the South, the country believed
that the terrible question had been charmed down
for an indefinite period. But the inevitable conflict
had hardly been postponed. A new class of states-
men had come upon the scene, more far-seeing in
regard to the nature of the controversy, and more
determined to bring it to a decisive issue. Seward,
Sumner, and Chase represented the more decided re-
sistance of the North against the spread of slavery,
and Jefferson Davis, Clemens, Soule, and others rep-
resented the determination of the South to extend the
area of slave territory or dissolve the Union. Web-
ster and Clay, the great champions of compromise,
passed away. Benton, who had represented Mis-
souri for thirty years in the Senate, was defeated in
his own State, leaving Houston as the sole conspic-
uous representative of the old Union or Jackson
Democracy from the South. In January, 1853, he
was reelected Senator by the legislature of Texas
without any formidable opposition.
On March 4, 1853, Franklin Pierce was inaugu-
rated President of the United States as the flexible
instrument of the aggressive Southern element. In
306 SAM HOUSTON
the early part of the session of 1854 Senator Douglas,
of Illinois, from the Committee on Territories, re-
ported the Kansas-Nebraska bill, which repealed the
Missouri Compromise, to which the country had
clung since 1820 as the pledge of peace and security,
and opened all the national territory to the chances
of slave colonization. Houston rose at once to the
height of the occasion. He opposed the bill vehe-
mently and unflinchingly. In a speech, delivered at
the night session of March 8, just before the passage
of the bill, which marked his commanding power as
1 an orator on a great occasion, and with a prophetic
I wisdom and prescience, he exposed the follies and
dangers of the bill to the country and to the South
in particular. He said, in emphatic words, of the
peril it would bring to the Union : —
"Mr. President, I cannot believe that the agitation
created by this measure will be confined to the Senate
chamber. I cannot believe from what we have wit-
nessed here to-night that this will be the exclusive
arena for the exercise of human passion and the ex-
pression of public opinion. If the Eepublic be not
shaken, I will thank Heaven for its kindness in main-
taining its stability."
He pointed out with much sagacity the special
perils which it would bring to Texas : —
"I will give you my reasons why I think Texas
would be in the most deplorable condition of all the
Southern States. It is now the terminus of the slave
population. It is a country of vast extent and fertile
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 307
soil, favorable to the culture and growth of those
productions which are most important to the necessi-
ties of the world, — cotton, sugar, and tobacco. An
immense slave population must eventually go there.
The demand for labor is so great, everything is so
inviting to the enterprising and industrious, that la-
bor will be transferred there because it will be of a
most profitable character, and the disproportion of
slaves to the white population must be immense.
Then, sir, it must become the gulf of slavery, and
there its terrible eddies will whirl if convulsions take
place."
He brushed aside the question of the principle
of non-intervention, as claimed by the South, and
showed that it was as useless in theory as it would
be dangerous in practice : —
"I again ask, What benefit is to result to the
South from this measure if adopted? . . . Will it
secure these territories to the South. No, sir, not
at all. But the gentleman tells us. It is the principle
we want. I can perceive but one principle involved
in the measure, and that principle lies at the root of
agitation ; and from that all the tumults and excite-
ments of the country must arise. That is the only
principle I can perceive. We are told by Southern
as well as Northern gentlemen, those who are for it,
and those who are against it, that slavery will never
be extended to that Territory, that it will never go
there ; but it is the principle of non-intervention it is
desired to establish. Sir, we have done well under
308 SA3I HOUSTON
tlie intervention of the Missouri Compromise, if the
gentlemen so call it, in other Territories, and I ad-
jure you, when there is so much involved, not to
press the matter too far. What is to be the conse-
quence? If it is not in embryo, my suggestion will
not make it so. It has been suggested elsewhere,
and I may repeat it here. What is to be the effect of
this measure if adopted, and you repeal the Missouri
Compromise ? The South is to gain nothing by it,
for honorable gentlemen from the South, and espe-
cially the junior Senator from Virginia, characterize it
as a miserable, trifling, little measure. Then, sir, is
the South to be benefited or propitiated by conferring
upon her a miserable, trifling, little measure? Will
that compensate the South for her uneasiness ? Will
it allay the agitation of the North? Will it preserve
the union of these States ? Will it sustain the Dem-
ocratic or the Whig party in their organizations?
No, sir, they all go to the wall. What is to be the
effect on the government? It is to be most fatal and
ruinous to the future harmony and well-being of the
country. I think that the measure itself would be
useless. If you establish non-intervention you make
nothing by that. But what will be the consequences
in the minds of the people ? They have a veneration
for that compromise. They have a respect and rev-
erence for it, from its antiquity and the associations
connected with it, and repeated references to it that
seemed to suggest that it marked the boundaries of
free and slave territory. They have no respect for it
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 309
as a compact, — I do not care what you call it, — but
as a line defining certain rights and privileges to dif-
ferent sections of the Union. The abstractions which
you indulge in here can never satisfy the people that
there is not something in it. Abrogate or disannul
it, and you exasperate the public mind. It is not
necessary that reason should accompany excitement.
Feeling is enough to agitate without much reason,
and that will be the great prompter on this occasion.
My word for it, we shall realize scenes of agitation,
which are rumbling in the distance now."
As to the charge that he was faithless to the South
and in alliance with the Abolitionists he replied in
manly words: —
"This is an eminently perilous measure, and do
you expect me to remain here silent, or to shrink
from the discharge of my duty in admonishing the
South of what I consider the results will be ? I will
do it, in spite of all the intimidations, or threats, or
discountenances that may be thrown upon me. Sir,
the charges that I am going with the Abolitionists
or the Free-Soilers affects not me. The discharge of
conscious duty prompts me often to confront the
united array of the very section of the country in
which I reside, in which my associations are, in which
my personal interests have always been, and in which
my affections rest. Where every look to the setting
sun carries me to the bosom of a family dependent
upon me, think you I could be alien to them? Never,
— never."
310 SAM HOUSTON
His apprehensions of the evils which would follow
the passage of the bill were no less than a prophecy
for the country and himself : —
"I had fondly hoped, Mr. President, that, having
attained to my present period of life, I should pass
the residue of my days, be they many or few, in
peace and tranquillity; that as I found the country
growing up rapidly, and have witnessed its immea-
surable expansion and development, when I close my
eyes on scenes around me, I would at least have the
cherished consolation and hope that I left my children
to a peaceful, happy, prosperous, and united com-
munity. I had hoped this. Fondly had I cherished
the desire and the expectation from 1850 until after
the introduction of this bill. My hoj)es are less san-
guine now. My anxieties increase, but my expecta-
tion lessens. Sir, if this repeal takes place I will
have seen the commencement of the agitation; but
the youngest child now born, I am apprehensive, will
not live to witness its termination."
In conclusion, he made an appeal for the Indians
who were to be dispossessed from the territory, and
whom none of the other statesmen, who were strug-
gling for or against the extension of slavery, had
thought it worth while to consider. His views on the
policy of treating the Indians had more than a tem-
porary bearing. He said : —
"Mr. President, I have very little hope that any
appeal that I may make on behalf of the Indians will
do any good. The honorable Senator from Indiana
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 311
says in substance that God Almighty has condemned
them, and made them an inferior race; that there is
no use in doing anything for them. With great
deference to that Senator, for whom I have never
cherished anything but kind feelings, I must be per-
mitted to dissent from his opinions. He says they are
not civilized, and *they are not homogeneous, and can-
not be so with the white race. They cannot be civil-
ized ! No ! Sir, it is idle to tell me that. We have
Indians on our western borders whose civilization is
not inferior to our own. . . . They have well-organ-
ized societies; they have their villages and towns;
they have their state houses and their capitols; they
have females and men who would grace the drawing-
rooms or salons of Washington; they have a well-
organized judiciary, a trial by jury, and the writ of
habeas corpus. These are the people for whom I
demand justice in the organization of these territo-
ries. . . . But the honorable Senator from Iowa
characterizes the remarks which I made in reference
to the Indians as arising from a feeling of 'sickly
sentimentality.' Sir, it is a sickly sentimentality
that was implanted in me when I was young, and it
has grown up with me. The Indian has a sense of
justice, truth, and honor that should find a respon-
sive chord in every heart. If the Indians on the
frontier are barbarous, or if they are cannibals and
eat each other, who are to blame for it? They are
robbed of the means of sustenance; and with hun-
dreds and thousands of them starving on the frontier,
312 SAM HOUSTON
liunger may prompt to such acts to prevent their
perishing. We shall never become cannibals in con-
nection with the Indians, but we do worse than that.
We rob them first of their native dignity and char-
acter; we rob them next of what the government
appropriates for them. If we do not do it in this
hall, men are invested with power and authority
who, officiating as agents or traders, rob them of
everything which is designed for them. Not less
than one hundred millions of dollars, I learn from
statistics, since the adoption of this government, have
been appropriated by Congress for purposes of justice
and benevolence toward the Indians ; but I am satis-
fied that they have never received fifteen millions
beneficially. They are too remote from the seat of
government to have their real condition und.erstood
here; and if the government intends liberality or
justice toward them, it is often diverted from the
intended object, and consumed by speculators. . . .
Now I should like to know if it becomes us to violate
a treaty made with the Indians when we please,
regardless of justice and honor? We should be care-
ful if it were with a power able to war with us ; and
it argues a degree of infinite meanness and indescrib-
able degradation on our part to act differently with
the Indians, who confide in our honor and justice,
and who call the President their Great Father, and
confide in him. Mr. President, it is in the power of
the Congress of the United States to do some justice
to the Indians by giving them a government of their
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 313
own, and encouraging them in tlieir organization and
improvement by inviting their delegates to a place
on the floor of the Senate and House of Representa-
tives. If you will not do it, the sin will lie at your
door, and Providence in his own way, mysterious
and incomprehensible to us though it is, will accom-
plish all his purposes, and may at some day avenge
the wrongs of the Indians upon our nation. As a
people we can save them; and the sooner the great
work is begun, the sooner will humanity have cause
to rejoice in its accomplishment."
The bill was passed, Houston and John Bell, of
Tennessee, being the only Senators from Southern
States who voted against it. Benton was not in his
accustomed seat in the Senate, but from his place in
the House of Representatives he inveighed against
the measure, and protested against the political mad-
ness which precipitated it upon the country.
One of the incidents connected with the controversy
in the Senate, which showed Houston's courage and
manliness, was in relation to the treatment of the
petition of three thousand clergymen of New Eng-
land, which had been presented against the passage
of the Nebraska bill. An attempt was made to re-
ject the petition, on the ground that it was insulting
to the Senate in pronouncing its action "immoral"
and in invoking the vengeance of the Almighty upon
the advocates of the bill. Senator Douglas made
a violent attack upon it, declaring it an "atrocious
falsehood," an "atrocious calumny," and that its
314 SAM HOUSTON
signers had "desecrated the pulpit and prostituted the
sacred desk." Senators Mason, Butler, Badger, and
others denounced it in very severe terms. Edward
Everett, who had presented the petition, made a fee-
ble and apologetic defense, which avoided the point
at issue in the character of the memorial. While
Douglas was speaking, Houston cried out to Sumner,
the other Massachusetts Senator, "Sumner, don't
speak, don't speak; leave him to me." Sumner re-
plied, "Will you take care of him?" "Yes," said
Houston, "if you will leave him to me." His pur-
pose in taking the place of Sumner, he said, was that
Douglas should have no opportunity to sustain his
charge that the memorial was the work of Abolition
confederates. In his remarks he vigorously defended
the character of the petitioners and the rights and
duty of clergymen to express their opinion on polit-
ical subjects. He was sharply criticised for making
use of the expression of " vice-gerents of God" in
regard to them, but he explained it as simply mean-
ing that they were the ministers and aids of the
Almighty. As Houston had no sympathy with the
Abolition sentiments of the petitioners his course was
the more honorable and manly. During the troubles
in Kansas which followed the passage of the bill he
was silent, and, doubtless, only regarded them as the
fulfillment of his prophecies of evil. He was equally
silent in regard to the attack upon Sumner in the
Senate chamber. He had seen such methods of car-
rying on political controversy before, and given an
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 315
example of it in his own person, so that he was
hardly in a position to reprimand it severely. But
he must have been revolted at the mingled brutality
and cowardice of Brooks's attack upon an unarmed
and unprepared man within the walls of the Senate
chamber.
Houston distinguished himself during his whole
senatorial career by his defense of the rights of the
Indians. He was indignant at the system of misman-
agement, robbery, and oppression which character-
ized the treatment of them by the government, and
in repeated speeches he urged a more humane, intel-
ligent, and practical method of dealing with them.
He was almost alone in Congress in defending their
rights. The professional philanthropy of the time
was almost entirely enlisted in the cause of the negro,
and the practical politicians regarded the Indian as
a nuisance when he could not be made a prey. A
great interest was involved throughout the entire
West in getting possession of the Indian lands, and
was energetically pushed by its representatives in
Congress. Houston's own people were not in sym-
pathy with him, and public opinion was indifferent
where it was not hostile. But he spoke out in manly
terms on every occasion, and it was to him that the
delegations of Indians who visited Washington ap-
pealed for advice and assistance. Mr. C. Edwards
Lester in his rhetorical pamphlet, " Sam Houston and
his Republic," gives a somewhat overstrained, but
probably essentially true account of the meeting of a
316 SAM HOUSTON
delegation of prairie Indians with Houston in Wash-
ington : —
"During the latter part of June, 1846, General
Morehead arrived in Washington with forty wild
Indians from Texas, belonging to more than a dozen
tribes. We saw their meeting with General Hous-
ton. One and all ran to him, and clasped him in
their brawny arms, and hugged him, like bears, to
their naked breasts, and called him ' father. ' Be-
neath the copper skin and thick paint the blood
rushed, and their faces changed, and the lips of -many
a warrior trembled, although the Indian may not
weep. These wild men knew him, and revered him
as one who was too directly descended from the Great
Spirit to be approached with familiarity, and yet they
loved him so well they coidd not help it. These were
the men 'he had been,' in the fine language of
Acquiquosk, whose words we quote, 'too subtle for
on the war-path, too powerful in battle, too magnani-
mous in victory, too wise in council, and too true in
faith.' They had flung away their arms in Texas,
and with the Comanche chief, who headed their file,
had come to Washington to see their father."
In a speech on the treatment of the Indians, De-
cember 31, 1854, Houston said, "I never knew a case
when a treaty was made and carried out in good
faith which was violated by the Indians," and with
one of his vigorous expressions, "I might have hated
the Indians if I had a soul no bigger than a shell-
bark." In an elaborate speech, January 29, 1855,
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 317
against increasing the army he contended that the
military methods were not the best way of dealing
with the Indians, and gave many instances of un-
called-for severity, injustice, and corruption by army
officers. He gave his practical views of how to deal
with the Indians : —
"Withdraw your army. Have five hundred cav-
alry, if you will, but I would rather have two hun-
dred and fifty Texas rangers (such as I could raise)
than five hundred of the best cavalry now in service.
I would have one thousand infantry so placed as to
guard the United States against Mexico, and five
hundred for scouting purposes. I would have five
trading-houses from the Rio Grande to the Red River
for intercourse with the Indians. I would have a
guard of twenty -five men out of an infantry regiment
at each trading-house, who would be vigilant and
always on the alert. Cultivate intercourse with the
Indians. Show them that you have comforts to ex-
change for their peltries; bring them around you;
domesticate them; familiarize them with civilization.
Let them see that you are rational beings, and they
will become rational in imitation of you. But take
no whiskey there at all, not even for the officers, for
fear their generosity would let it out. Do this, and
you will have peace with the Indians. Whenever
you convince an Indian that he is dependent on you
for comforts or for what he deems luxuries or ele-
gances of life, you attach him to you. Intercourse
and kindness will win the fiercest animal on earth,
318 SAM HOUSTON
except the hyena, and its spots and nature cannot be
changed. The nature of an Indian can be changed.
He changes under favorable circumstances, and rises
to the dignity of a civilized being. It takes a gener-
ation or two to regenerate his race, but it can be
done. I would have fields around the trading-houses.
I would encourage the Indians to cultivate them.
Let them see how much it adds to their comfort ; how
it secures to their wives and children abundant sub-
sistence, and then you win the Indian over to civili-
zation^ you charm him, and he becomes a civilized
man."
In attending to the confederacy which was said
to have been formed by the tribes of the Sioux na-
tion, he said : —
"Theirs is not a confederacy to assail the whites,
but to protect themselves. I justify them in doing
it. I am sorry there is a necessity for it ; but if I
were among them, and they proposed a confederacy
to repel cruelty and butchery, I would join them, and
he would be a dastard who would not! "
These were words in a different and nobler strain
than those which the Senate was accustomed to hear
about the incurable barbarism of the Indians, and the
"sickly sentimentality " of doing anything with them,
except rob them of their lands and butcher them if
they resisted.
In 1856, there was a movement for the nomination
of Houston to the Presidency. The General Com-
mittee of the Democracy of New Hampshire issued
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 319
an address, urging his nomination as "The People's
Candidate," on the ground, mainly, of his opposition
to the Nebraska bill and the repeal of the Missouri
Compromise. A campaign biography, in the usual
style of extravagant eulogy, was published, and
Houston made a sort of electioneering tour in some of
the principal cities in the North, delivering addresses
on the political condition of the country and on the
Indian question. This was the period of the brief
existence of the Know-Nothing party. Whether
Houston ever definitely joined it is not known, but
he was in sympathy with its opposition to the easy
naturalization of foreigners, and was possibly ready
to become its candidate for the Presidency if it ex-
hibited itself in any degree of national strength. He
had voted in the Senate for an allotment of lands to
the Hungarian refugees, but he was not carried away
with the popular admiration for Kossuth. When
Kossuth was received by the Senate the following
account of his meeting with Houston was given in the
newspaper report : —
"Among the incidents of the reception it may be
mentioned that when the martial figure of General
Houston approached Kossuth there appeared to be a
special attraction in the person of the hero of San
Jacinto. Mr. Houston said, 'Sir, you are welcome
to the Senate of the United States.' Kossuth feel-
ingly replied, 'I can only wish I had been as success-
ful as you, sir. ' To which Houston responded, ' God
grant you may be, sir.' "
320 SAM HOUSTON
Later, he expressed his oj)inion of'Kossuth in very
unflattering terms, accused him of cowardice in re-
treating from Hungary without striking a blow, and
of living in splendor and luxury while his people
were "left to bite the dust, or gnaw the file in agony."
The very different treatment which he and the people
of Texas had received, in comparison with the wild
enthusiasm over Kossuth and Hungary, evidently ran-
kled in his thoughts.
He was promptly accused of his affiliation with the
Know-Nothings, and of his presidential aspirations,
and gave a rather equivocal denial of them both in
the course of a running debate in the Senate. As to
the Know-Nothings, he said, "I know nothing," but
he concurred in many of the principles attributed to
them. He would require "every person coming from
abroad, before being received here, to bring an in-
dorsement from one of our consuls, and produce evi-
dence of good character from the place whence he
emigrates, so that when he comes here we may receive
him into full communion, with all the rights guaran-
teed to him by the laws which may exist at the time
of his immigration." He declared that he would not
vote for any bill to prohibit Eoman Catholics from
holding office. In regard to the Presidency, he said,
"When the Senator from Iowa supposes that I would
cater for the Presidency of the United States he does
me great injustice. I would not cater for any office
under heaven. But, sir, I know one thing; if it
were to be forced upon me I would make a great
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 821
many changes in some small matters." At the con-
vention of the "American" party in Baltimore, Feb-
ruary 22, 1856, which nominated Millard Fillmore for
the Presidency, Houston received three votes. What-
ever relations he may have had with the Know-No-
thing party he afterward abandoned, and denounced
it. In a speech at Nacogdoches he declared the party
dead, and buried face downward beyond the hope of
resurrection.
Houston was undoubtedly aware that his opposition
to the extreme Southern element was fatal to his
political ambition. As in the case of Benton, he was
more bitterly hated and violently attacked on the
ground that he was a traitor to Southern interests
than if he had been a Northern antagonist of slavery.
Henry A. Wise and others made themselves conspic-
uous by diatribes against him in public meetings in
Southern cities, and, although Houston made no pub-
lic reply in the Senate or elsewhere, it is not likely
that he repressed his tongue in private comment on
his adversaries, or that they were not made aware of
his opinion of them. In the Democratic Convention
of 1856, a "Northern man with Southern principles"
was nominated, and the Southern conspirators secured
four years more in which to make their preparations
for disunion. In the mean time, the extreme element
had been gaining political power in Texas. The
feeling of the danger to slave property and of antag-
onism to the North had been sedulously cultivated,
and the wealthier planters, who had grown up among
322 SAM HOUSTON
the original settlers, acquired the political control.
They were joined by the old enemies and rivals of
Houston, and violent attacks were made not only
upon his so-called apostasy to the South, but his past
career in Texas. It is probable that Houston realized
that his course would cost him his seat in the Senate,
and there are some indications that he was willing
that it should be so. At least, he made no such de-
termined attempt to retain his place as Benton had
done in Missouri. With his strong hold upon the
people of Texas, and his wonderful power in a per-
sonal campaign of stump-speaking, he might have de-
feated the combination against him, and rallied the
people to his support, as he did later, in 1859, when
he swept the State against a still more formidable
opposition. But he made ho special effort to be re-
elected, and left the canvass to his opponents. It is
possible that Houston did not feel entirely at home in
the Senate, where he could not be the undisputed
leader, as he could be in a popular assembly, and
really had a longing for the ease and tranquillity of
private life, such as sometimes comes over the strong-
est men of action after a life of stress and excitement.
At any rate, he was defeated for reelection to the Sen-
ate in the Legislature of 1857, and Lewis T. Wigfall,
a rampant fire-eater, was chosen in his place. His
colleague. Senator Rusk, with whom he had been on
the most affectionate and friendly terms, committed
suicide by shooting himself at Nacogdoches, July 5,
1857, from grief at the death of his wife. Houston
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 323
was nominated as an independent candidate for gov-
ernor, but manifested little interest in the campaign,
and was defeated by tbe regular Democratic candi-
date, Hardin E. Eunneis. The vote stood 32,552
for Eunneis, and 23,628 for Houston. It was the
only time in which Houston was ever defeated in an
election by the people of Texas.
After his defeat Houston continued the perform-
ance of his duties in the Senate without sign of dis-
comfiture. On April 20, 1858, he offered a resolu-
tion for the appointment of a committee of seven to
inquire into the expediency of the assumption by the
United States of a protectorate over Mexico, and
supported it in an elaborate speech. He described
the hopeless condition of Mexico, and urged the
measure as a legitimate extension of the Monroe Doc-
trine. It was an impracticable scheme, which would
have eventually compelled the United States to take
possession of the country, but it is probable that
Houston hoped that it would arouse a spirit of na-
tional pride throughout the United States, which
would divert attention from the sectional quarrels.
He said, speaking of the era of the promulgation of
the Monroe Doctrine : —
"At that glorious epoch there was a broad, tower-
ing spirit of nationality extant. The States stood in
the endearing relation to each other of one for all and
all for one. The Constitution was their political text-
book, the glory of the Eepublic their resolute aim.
Practically, there was but one party, and that party
324 SAM HOUSTON
animated by but one object, — one upward and on-
ward career. As if in atonement for tlie wrong in-
flicted upon the country by the angry Missouri Com-
promise, which was then fresh in every mind, there
seemed to be no circumscription which everywhere
within our embraces displayed itself. May we not
trust, Mr. President, that a similar result will ensue
from this still more angry Kansas controversy, and
that the benign influence of such results will be as
durable as creation? "
The country, however, was too much excited for
any such panacea, and its results would only have
been mischievous even if it had been adopted.
On January 12, 1859, Houston advocated the
southern route for the Pacific Railroad through Texas
and asked for the preliminary surveys. In the
course of his speech he alluded to the peace and
harmony which would exist between the North and
South, and he was accused by Senator Iverson, of
Georgia, with being a candidate for the Presidency,
and with catering for Northern votes. He replied : —
"If every political party of this Union were to ten-
der to me this day the nomination for the Presidency
I would respectfully decline it. I have higher, no-
bler, tenderer duties to perform. I have to create a
resting-place for those who are dear to me as the peo-
ple of this Union, and who form part of them. These
are the duties I have to perform. If there is aught
of public service that remains to me unfinished I am
not apprised of it. My life has been meted out to
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 325
sixty -five years ; and forty -five years of that life de-
voted to my country's service, almost continuously,
should entitle me to an honorable discharge. I claim
that discharge from my country. I claim that, hav-
ing performed every duty which devolved upon me
with fidelity, I ought to be permitted to retire from
this chamber in accordance with my heart-felt desires,
with a constitution, thank God, not much impaired,
and with clean hands and a clean conscience, to the
retirement where duties are demanded of me as a fa-
ther. So the defeat which has been spoken of was no
disappointment, and by way of explanation that the
gentleman may be more perfectly satisfied, I will say
that had my lamented and honorable colleague. Gen-
eral Rusk, remained with us, by the providence of
God, on the 4th of March last I should have vacated
my seat, and retired to the walks of private life."
In conclusion, with that personal seK-appreciation
which was seldom wanting from his speeches, he ac-
cused Senator Iverson of playing the part of the ass
in kicking the face of the dead lion. On February
23, 1859, he presented the resolutions of the Texas
legislature, impeaching John C. Watrous, United
States district judge, and supported them in a long
and somewhat vindictive account of the charges
against him. On February 26, he delivered his last
speech to the Senate. It was a circumstantial review
and defense of his conduct as commander-in-chief
during the war of independence in Texas, and a re-
tort upon the personal character and conduct of some
326 SAM HOUSTON
of his accusers. In bidding farewell to the Senators
he said that he had felt it his duty to cultivate
kindly personal relations with every one of them.
His last words were the expression of a prayer that
" the perpetuity of the Union might he secured to the
latest posterity."
It was true that Houston had not carried into the
Senate his habit of personal quarrel on political ques-
tions, which he had too often manifested, or readily
responded to, in the turbulent and passionate rivalries
and controversies of Texas. He had grown calmer
since the days when he had struck down Stanberry
in the streets of Washington, and the sober and de-
corous atmosphere of the Senate doubtless exercised
a restraining influence upon him. There is no in-
stance in which he did not thoroughly maintain the
proprieties of debate, and his tone toward his fellow-
Senators was that of the dignified and impressive
politeness which no one knew better how to exhibit.
He was a solitary as well as a peculiar figure in the
Senate, having no share in the counsels of his party,
and alienated by his political course from the rep-
resentatives of his own section. He had not the
education, the training, or the capacity for the argu-
mentative debates on questions of law and technical
legislation, which were necessary to command a lead-
ing place in the Senate, and, although his shrewd and
practical common sense was often exhibited in mat-
ters of detail, it was only from his position and his
fervid utterances against disunion that he attracted
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 327
national attention, and manifested his wisdom as well
as his courage. His reverence for the example of
Jackson doubtless gave his mind its original bias,
but he perceived with a clear vision the folly of the
South in precipitating the conflict, in which it was
sure to be overwhelmed, and his love for the Union
was enlightened wisdom as well as patriotic passion.
On the question of slavery he said, "I am not the
enemy of slavery; neither am I its propagandist, nor
will I ever be." He was a slave-holder, and accepted
the institution as a part of the social system in which
he found himself. But his conscience revolted
against its iniquitous principle, and his practical sa-
gacity doubted its continuance. His strength and
friendship lay with the industrious yeomanry, who
cultivated their own lands, and he had no sympathy
or affiliation with the oligarchy of rich planters, who
were leading the South to ruin. In the Senate, he
was the last representative of the hardy frontiersmen
who had built their cabins in the primeval forest, or
turned the soil of the virgin prairie, and he saw with
regret the growth of that class at the South who
were monopolizing the land for great plantations, and
were creating an aristocracy of wealth, based on slave
labor. To him and to Thomas H. Benton is due the
credit of representing the true welfare of the South,
and with courage and wisdom resisting the tendencies
which were leading it to destruction, and to the social
and industrial decadence which would have followed,
even if there had been no civil war.
328 SAM HOUSTON
Mr. Oliver Dyer, in his book of reminiscences of
Washington, "Great Senators of the United States,"
gives an interesting account of Houston's appearance
and manners in the Senate in 1848 : —
" It was not without apprehension that I first ap-
proached General Houston, and looked him over, as
he stood in an ante-room of the Senate chamber, talk-
ing with his colleague. Senator Kusk. I was not
disappointed in his appearance. It was easy to be-
lieve in his heroism, and to imagine him leading a
heady fight and dealing destruction on his foes. He
was then only fifty -five years old, and seemed to be
in perfect health and admirable physical condition.
He was a magnificent barbarian, somewhat tempered
with civilization. He was large of frame, of stately
carriage and dignified demeanor, and had a lion-like
countenance, capable of expressing the fiercest pas-
sions. His dress was peculiar, but it was becoming
to his style. The conspicuous features of it were a
military cap and a short military cloak of fine blue
broadcloth with a blood-red lining. Afterward I
occasionally met him, when he wore a vast and pic-
turesque sombrero and a Mexican blanket, — a sort
of ornamented bed-quilt, with a slit in the middle,
through which the wearer's head is thrust, leaving
the blanket to hang in graceful folds around the body.
"Like other men of his class General Houston was
a hearty drinker, but he seldom showed the effect of
his potations. It seemed to me as though his wild
life had unfitted him for civilization. He was not
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 329
a man to shine in a deliberative assembly. It was
only at rare intervals that he took any part in the
debates, and when he did speak his remarks were
brief. His principal employment in the Senate was
whittling pine sticks. I used to wonder where he
got his pine lumber, but never fathomed the mystery.
He would sit and whittle away, and at the same time
keep up a muttering of discontent at the long-winded
speakers, whom he would sometimes curse for their
intolerable Verbosity. Those who knew him well
said that he was tender-hearted, and had a chivalric
regard for women ; that he would make any personal
sacrifice to promote the welfare of a lady friend, — a
reputation that was directly in line with his alleged
conduct toward his wife. It was a matter of com-
mon jocose remark that if 'Old Sam Jacinto ' (that
was Houston's nickname) should ever become Presi-
dent, he would have a cabinet of women.
"General Houston impressed me as a lonely, mel-
ancholy man. And if the story of his early life was
true he might well be lonely and melancholy, in spite
of his success and his fame; for that blow which
smote him to the heart at the zenith of his splendid
young career, and dislocated his life and drove him
into the wilderness, must have inflicted wounds that
no political triumphs or military glory could heal."
Somewhat singularly, considering their marked con-
trast in education and temperament, Houston appears
to have attracted the regard and approval of Charles
Sumner. In a letter to John Bigelow, February 3,
330 SAM HOUSTON
1851, Sumner wrote: "I am won very much by
Houston's conversation. With him the anti -slavery
interests would stand better than with any man who
now seems among the possibilities. He is really
against slavery, and has no prejudices against Free-
Soilers. In other respects he is candid, liberal, and
honorable. I have been astonished to find myself so
much of his inclining."
During his early residence as a Senator in Wash-
ington, Houston "experienced religion," as it is
termed. In an account of his conversion given by
Eev. G. W. Simpson, his pastor in Washington, it
is stated that "one Sunday, the tall form of Sam
Houston, as he was familiarly called, draped in his
Mexican blanket as a shield against the blasts of
winter, was seen entering the sanctuary of the Baptist
Church near the City Hall. Approaching the pas-
tor after the service he said that respect for his wife,
one of the best Christians on earth, had brought him
there. He attended regularly thereafter, and kept up
his habit of whittling toys for children in his pew.
He paid close attention to the sermons, and was in
the habit of giving abstracts of them in the weekly
letters which he regularly wrote to his wife on Sun-
day afternoons. After a few months a sermon on
the text, "Better is he that ruleth his spirit than he
that taketh a city," moved him to a sense of his
spiritual needs, and his thoughts and reading became
more and more of a religious character. He was
much influenced by a book by one Nelson on " The
SENATOR OF THE UNITED STATES 331
Cause and Cure of Infidelity," and gave copies of it
to his friends. Finally, lie made an open profession
of religion, and received the ordinance of baptism by
immersion at Independence, Texas, in 1854. His
reading of the Bible was continuous and earnest, and
its phraseology and imagery found frequent places
in his speeches. His pastor relates an anecdote in
somewhat exaggerated phraseology of his reconcilia-
tion with a personal enemy under the influence of an
appeal to his religious sentiment : —
"Calling early after his arrival to see him, an hour
was spent in conversation on his profession and the
grounds which had led to it. On rising to leave,
the pastor was followed as usual to the door, and, as
often happened, the General asked: 'Brother S., is
there anything I can do for you?' — his reference
being to claims of humanity sometimes presented to
him. The reply was, 'No, General, I have no tax
upon you at present.' Immediately, however, the
recollection was awakened that the next Sabbath was
the season for the Lord's Supper, and that with one
of the leading brethren of the church General Hous-
ton had formerly a trying and yet unsettled contro-
versy in his official capacity as the head of a Senate
committee. At once, prompted by the recollection,
the pastor added, still holding his hand, 'General,
I recall that statement in part; I have nothing to ask
of you as a man, but I have something to ask of you
as a Christian pastor.' Fixing his keen eye, as he
looked down, upon mine, he meekly but firmly asked.
\/
332 SAM HOUSTON
'What is it, Brother S.?' 'General,' was the re-
ply, 'you know the alienation between you and
Brother W. You will meet at the Lord's Supper
next Sabbath evening; you onjght not to meet until
that difficulty is settled. Now I wish you after ser-
vice on Sunday morning to let me bring you two to-
gether, and without a word of attempt at justification
on either side, I wish you to take him by the hand,
and say with all your heart that you will forgive and
forget and bury the past, and that you wish him to
do the same, and hereafter to meet as brothers
in Christ.' The fire began to glow in his eyes, his
brow to knit, his teeth to clench, and his whole frame
shook with the struggle of the old man within him ;
but in an instant the man whose passion had been
terrible, indeed ungovernable, on so many a bloody
battle-field, was changed from the lion into the lamb.
He meekly replied, 'Brother S., I will do it.' And
what he promised was done, and in an air of majestic
frankness and nobleness of soul such as moved every
beholder."
At the conclusion of his term in the Senate, Hous-
ton returned to his home in Texas, possibly with the
hope that his later years might be spent in peace and
freedom from public care.
CHAPTER XV
GOVERNOR OF TEXAS — SECESSION
Whatever hopes Houston may have had of being
able to pass his declining years in peace and tranquil-
lity, he found the political condition of Texas more
excited and disturbed than at any period since the
revolution, and that it was necessary for him to gird
up his loins for a tremendous struggle against the
conspirators, who were endeavoring to array the State
against the Union. The secession element in Texas
was more desperate and determined than in any of
the Southern States, except South Carolina. It
was also more discreditable and criminal. In South
Carolina the movement was more general, and in a
certain sense more patriotic. It was founded on a
definite theory of government, logically held and
argued, and it represented the spirit of State pride
and independence. In Texas, on the other hand, it
was more selfish, and took the darker form of con-
spiracy. Its leaders were the adventurers who were
in sympathy with Walker in his attempts to subju-
gate Central America, and with Lopez in his descent
upon the island of Cuba, and were eager for any
scheme that promised them power and plunder.
Their avowed purpose was the reopening of the Afri-
334 SAM HOUSTON
can slave trade, and tlieir unacknowledged, and per-
haps unformulated, plans were for the formation of a
buccaneer empire, with unlimited designs for aggres-
sion and plunder upon their Spanish-American neigh-
bors. They were represented by a secret society,
called "The Knights of the Golden Circle," which
had a regular military organization, was well supplied
with arms, and had a considerable fund of money.
The organization was originally formed to set on foot
or support filibuster expeditions like those of Walker
and Lopez, but the growing antagonism between the
North and South offered them a more tempting field
in the shape of a Southern empire, which they hoped
to control for their purposes. Their lodges, called
"castles," were established in all the principal towns,
and it was estimated that at the outbreak of the
secession difficulty they had a force of 8000 men,
formed in regular military organization and to some
extent disciplined. They were active in politics, and
by their power and energy controlled the official ac-
tion of the Democratic party. Governor Runnels
was in sympathy with this element, as was also the
majority of the legislature during his administration.
During the excitement of the struggle to force the
admission of slavery into Kansas, Governor Runnels
issued a special message to the legislature, calling
attention to the threatened aggressions upon Southern
rights, and distinctly foreshadowing secession. The
legislature adopted a resolution denouncing the at-
tempts of the Northern States to exclude slavery
SECESSION CONSPIRACY 335
from Kansas, and to prevent the slave-holders from
carrying their property into the common territory of
the Union. It authorized the governor to order an
election of seven delegates to a convention of the
Southern States, and, in case such a convention was
not held, to call a special session of the legislature
to consider the question of Texas resuming her inde-
pendence.
These open attacks upon the permanency of the
Union aroused and alarmed the majority of the citi-
zens, who were opposed to secession and the filibuster
designs of the conspirators. In the Democratic Con-
vention of 1859, which renominated Runnels, a plat-
form was adopted advocating secession in the contin-
gency of the further invasion of Southern rights, and
there was an outspoken expression of opinion in favor
of reopening the slave trade. The party in favor of
reopening the slave trade did not confine themselves
to declarations. Two cargoes of barbarian slaves
from Africa were landed in chains, one near Galves-
ton and one near Indianola, and distributed through
the country. These events caused great excitement
and indignation among the conservative and Unionist
classes, and they determined upon political action in
opposition to the secession Democracy. Houston was
the natural leader from his personal popularity among
the people and his vigorous denunciations of dis-
union. There was no definite organization of the
party, but at a public meeting at Brenham, Hous-
ton was nominated for governor by acclamation. He
336 SAM HOUSTON
accepted in a letter which declared that "the Consti-
tution and the Union embraced all the principles by
which he would be governed."
The campaign that followed was one of the most
notable and exciting which had ever taken place
in Texas. It demonstrated Houston's tremendous
hold upon the common people and his extraordinary
power as a stump-speaker. All the party machin-
ery, most of the prominent public men, and the influ-
ential newspapers were against him. Almost single-
handed he defeated them all. He made a thorough
canvass of the State, speaking in nearly every town
and village. He aroused the enthusiasm of the peo-
ple by his eloquent appeals for the preservation of
the Union, replied to the vindictive personal attacks
made upon him by his opponents with a vituperation
more scathing than their own, tickled his audiences
by his familiar and sometimes coarse humor, and
strengthened the attachment of his personal followers
by his cordial greetings and intimate conversation.
There was no one like Houston for a Texas audience.
In joint debates he simply overwhelmed his competi-
tors, and treated them with a contempt partly real
and partly affected, as if it was insolence on their
part to attempt to speak on the same platform with
him. One after another they retired discomfited,
and in his closing speech at Galveston he reckoned
them up with contemptuous personal epithets. This
is a specimen of the manner in which he dealt with
them, and manifested his confidence in his hold upon
CANVASS FOR GOVERNOR 337
the people. Senator Wigfall liad been replying to
him in Eastern Texas. At a meeting in the court-
house of one of the towns, at which Wigfall was pres-
ent, Houston concluded his speech by saying : " I am
told that there is a little fellow by the name of Wig-
tail, or some such name, following me about and try-
ing to answer my speeches. What he will tell you
will be a pack of lies." So saying he stalked out,
followed by a portion of the audience, leaving Wig-
fall to make his speech to the remainder. Houston,
as was his custom, seated himself upon a store-box
on the sidewalk among his friends, and commenced
whittling and talking familiarly about their families,
the crops, and the neighborhood gossip. But all the
while he kept his eye on the court-house door. When
the audience began to come out after the conclusion
of Wigfall' s speech, he rose up to his full height,
and, waving his big white hat, shouted, "Didn't I
say to you that he 'd tell you a pack of lies? " His
familiar and caustic humor was equally taking, and
the anecdotes of his sayings were relished at every
cross-roads grocery and by every cabin fire. At the
town of Milam a young lawyer, the son of an old
friend of Houston, had established his office. Houston
visited him, and talked with him in his usual cordial
and impressive manner about his family and pros-
pects. Later, while seated among a group of his
friends in front of a store, he was informed that the
young lawyer was the only man in the town who was
going to vote against him. Presently the young man
338 SAM HOUSTON
passed the group. Houston asked in a tone loud
enougli for him to hear, " Who is that long, gangling
scarecrow, who is going by? " This was considered
a touch of humor, worthy of "Old Sam," and became
the current joke of the neighborhood. Houston's
triumph was in chief measure that of his personal
influence. His course in opposing the Kansas-Ne-
braska bill had been generally disapproved, and he
had been defeated in the previous camj)aign in which
he had not made an active personal canvass. He
rallied and invigorated the Union sentiment, and
converted a minority into a majority. The actions
of the extreme element had undoubtedly alarmed
the conservative portion of the community, but it is
extremely improbable that the Union sentiment would
have preponderated if Houston had not given it force
and energy. As it was, the majority of the legisla-
ture was in the hands of the disunionists, and his
associates in the Executive, except one, were swept
away by the tide, when it arose. A considerable
portion of his vote was due simply to the fact that
he was "Sam Houston," and had a strong personal
party, which would have followed and supported bins
under any circumstances. He received 36,257 vote^^-
to 27,500 for Eunnels.
Houston was inaugurated as Governor December*
21, 1859. He sent his message to the legislature
January 15. Mexican banditti, under the command
of Juan de Cortinas, had been preying upon the peo-
ple on the border of the Eio Grande, and the Indians
GOVERNOR OF TEXAS 339
had been especially troublesome and dangerous on
the frontier. Houston promptly applied to the gov-
ernment of the United States for additional troops,
and organized three companies of rangers to patrol
the frontier. He asked the legislature for an ap-
propriation to pay them. He recommended various
changes in the departments, and strongly urged lib-
eral appropriations for the public schools. In regard
to the relations of Texas with the United States, he
congratulated the, legislature on the triumph of con-
servatism in the nation, and the evident purpose to
repress the dangerous agitators on both sides. He
said, "Texas will maintain the Constitution and
stand by the Union. It is all that can save us as a
nation. Destroy it and anarchy awaits us."
The excitement over the coming presidential elec-
tion was rising to fever heat. Houston took no active
part in the campaign. He was opposed to the elec-
tion of Lincoln as the representative of Northern
aggression against slavery. He was equally opposed
to the election of Breckenridge and of Douglas, as
he had vowed never to vote for any man who had
supported the Kansas -Nebraska bill. He saw no
ciiance for the election of Bell, and, besides, did not
regard him as a competent man for the Presidency.
Tn a private letter from Austin, dated September 8,
1860, he declared that he stood with folded arms in
regard to the candidates, and he could see no way
out of the difficulty except by the election of mem-
bers of the Electoral College who would be pledged to
340 SAM HOUSTON
vote for a Union man, regardless of the official can-
didates. This was obviously a hopeless and impossi-
ble scheme. On the 22d of September there was a
grand Union mass meeting at Austin. Houston ad-
dressed it in an eloquent and forcible speech, rising
from a sick-bed to do so. He spoke of the glories
of the common country and its great destiny, and
pointed out the weakness of any State which aban-
doned the Union. He declared that the possible tri-
umph of the Republican party would not be a suffi-
cient cause for the dissolution of the Union : —
"But if, through division in the ranks of those op-
posed to Mr. Lincoln, he should be elected, we have
no excuse for dissolving the Union. The Union is
worth more than Mr. Lincoln, and, if the battle is to
be fought for the Constitution, let us fight it in the
Union and for the sake of the Union. With a ma-
jority of the people in favor of the Constitution, shall
we desert the government, and leave it in the hands
of the minority? A new obligation will be imposed
upon us, to guard the Constitution and to see that
no infraction of it is attempted or permitted. If Mr.
Lincoln administers the government in accordance
with the Constitution, our rights must be respected.
If he does not, the Constitution provides a remedy."
He denounced the disunion agitators of the South
as merely reckless and mischievous conspirators, who
owned no property and had no interest in slavery.
"I know some of them, who are making the most
fuss, who would not make good negroes if they were
GOVERNOR OF TEXAS 341
blacked." He paid an affecting tribute to tbe memo-
ries of Henry Clay and Andrew Jackson, and ap-
pealed to the old Whigs and old Democrats to follow
the example of their great leaders in devotion to the
Union. He concluded with words of powerful and
pathetic eloquence : —
"When I look back and remember the names that
are canonized as the tutelar saints of liberty, and the
warnings they have given you against disunion, I
cannot believe that you will be led astray. I cannot
be long among you. My sands of life are fast run-
ning out. As the glass becomes exhausted, if I can
feel that I can leave my country prosperous and
united, I shall die content. To leave men with whom
I have mingled in troublous times, and whom I have
learned to love as brothers; to leave the children of
those whom I have seen pass away, after lives of de-
votion to the Union; to leave the people who have
borne me up and sustained me; to leave my coun-
try, and not feel the liberty and happiness I have
enjoyed would still be theirs, would be the worst pang
of death. I am to leave children among you, to
share the fate of your children. Think you I feel
no interest in the future for their sakes? We are
passing away. They must encounter the evils which
are to come. In the far distant future the genera-
tions that spring from our loins are to venture in the
path of glory and honor. If untrammeled, who can
tell the mighty progress they will make? If cut
adrift, if the calamitous curse of disunion is inflicted
342 SAM HOUSTON
upon them, who can picture their misfortune and
shame?"
Houston believed in the prevalence of the Union
sentiment among the people of the South, and endeav-
ored to give it an opportunity for expressing itself.
He addressed letters to the Governors of the South-
ern States, proposing a convention, and issued a
proclamation for an election to be held early in Feb-
ruary for the choice of the seven delegates under the
resolution of the previous legislature for that pur-
pose. But events anticipated the election, and it was
never held. The Governors of the Southern States,
who were all disunionists, paid no attention to Hous-
ton's letters. He was denounced everywhere as a
traitor to the South. Senator Wigfall said in Vir-
ginia that he ought to, be tarred and feathered and
driven from the State. Senator Iverson, of Georgia,
his old antagonist in the Senate, went so far as to hint
at his assassination. He said, "Some Texan Brutus
may arise to rid his country of this old, hoary -headed
traitor."
Lincoln was elected. South Carolina seceded, and
applied to the other Southern States to unite and
form a confederacy. The demand for action on the
invitation was so strong that Houston called a special
session of the legislature to meet January 21. Al-
ready illegal steps had been taken to force the State
out of the Union. A proclamation had been issued
from Austin, signed by about sixty citizens, clerks in
the departments and others, calling for a general
GOVERNOR OF TEXAS 343
election to be held on January 8, for a convention
of delegates from the people to meet on January 28.
The election was held, but only a comparatively few
of the people recognized its validity, the total num-
ber of votes cast being less than 10,000. It was to
forestall the action of this illegal body that Houston
called the legislature together and recommended a
properly called and constituted convention. In his
message he declared that he believed that the time
had come for the people of Texas to take action in
accordance with their sovereign will. While deplor-
ing the election of Messrs. Lincoln and Hamlin, he
could see no reason in it for the immediate and sepa-
rate secession of Texas. He deprecated any hasty
action, and thought that means should be taken for
the people to express their will by legal means.
"They have stood aloof from revolutionary measures,
and now demand an opportunity to express their will
through the ballot box." He had not lost faith that
their rights could be maintained in the Union, and
that it might yet be perpetuated. Between constitu-
tional remedies and anarchy and civil war, he could
see no middle course. In his message, January 24,
transmitting the resolutions of the legislature of
South Carolina, Houston declared his "unqualified
protest against and dissent from the principles enunci-
ated in the resolutions." He argued against the right
of secession on constitutional grounds, and showed
the total lack of any guarantee of permanency in a
new confederacy. He concluded : —
344 SAM HOUSTON
"I would therefore recommend the adoption of
resolutions dissenting from the assertion of the ab-
stract right of secession and refusing to send deputies
for any present existing cause, and urging upon the
people of all the States, North and South, the neces-
sity of cultivating brotherly feeling, observing jus-
tice, and attending to their own affairs."
The convention met on the day appointed, and the
legislature promptly adopted a resolution recognizing
its authority. Houston vetoed it on the ground that
its election had been illegal. The resolution was
passed over his veto. The convention immediately
adopted an ordinance of secession by a vote of 167
to 7, and provided for its submission to the people
at an election on February 23. Without waiting
for its ratification, the convention elected delegates
to the Congress of the Southern States at Montgom-
ery, and appointed a Committee of Public Safety, of
which John C. Robertson was president. The Com-
mittee of Public Safety immediately took steps to
secure the arms and military property of the United
States, and appointed three commissioners to arrange
for the terms of their surrender with General David
E. Twiggs, the commander of the troops in the
Department.
The military Department of Texas was the most
important and richly supplied of any in the United
States. The demands for the protection of the line
of the Rio Grande against the predatory incursions of
the Mexicans, and of the exposed frontiers against
SECESSION 345
the dangerous wild tribes of Indians, had called a
large jDortion of the army to be stationed there. It
was scattered in various posts along the Eio Grande
and on the northern frontier for more than a thou-
sand miles, and numbered about 2500 men. There
was an immense amount of arms and military stores
collected at the headquarters of the Department at
San Antonio. General Twiggs, the commander of
the Department, was an old and somewhat distin-
guished officer of the army. He was in feeble health,
and had long been on leave of absence at his residence
in Louisiana. He sympathized thoroughly with the
secession movement, and was undoubtedly in com-
munication with its leaders. He returned unexpect-
edly to resume the command on the 5th of December,
1860, superseding Colonel Eobert E. Lee, who per-
haps could not be relied on to do the necessary work.
He immediately began issuing leaves of absence to
the officers, and still farther scattering the troops.
He expressed himself as convinced that the Union ^
was already dissolved, and declared that he would
never order his soldiers to fire on American citizens.
He intimated that when a demand was made on him
by the State, he would surrender the property of the
government. Houston was informed of these asser-
tions on the part of Twiggs, and for the purpose of
testing him, or of obtaining the control of the arms
in his own hands to thwart the designs of the seces-
sionists, he sent on January 20, the day before the
meeting of the legislature, .a special messenger to
Twiggs with the following letter : —
346 SAM HOUSTON
My dear General, — The present pressure of
important events necessarily induces prompt action
on the part of all public functionaries. In this view
of the matter, I send to you General J. M. Smith of
this State on a confidential mission, to know what in
the present crisis you consider your duty to do, as to
maintaining in behalf of the Federal Government or
passing over to the State the possession of the posts,
arsenals, and public property within the State; and
also, if a demand for the possession of the same is
made by the Executive, you are authorized, or it
would be conformable to your sense of duty, to place
in possession of the authorities of the State the posts,
arms, munitions, and property of the Federal Govern-
ment, on the order of the Executive, to an officer of
the State, empowered to receive and receipt for the
same.
The course is suggested by the fact that information
has reached the Executive that an effort will be made
by an unauthorized mob to take forcibly and appro-
priate the public stores and property to uses of their
own, assuming to act on behalf of the State.
Any arrangements made with you by General
Smith will be sanctioned and approved by me, and
should you require any assistance in resisting the con-
templated and unauthorized attack upon the public
property, and to place the same in possession of the
state authorities, you are authorized to call on the
mayor and citizens of San Antonio for such assist-
ance as you may deem necessary.
SECESSION 347
I will hope to hear from you, General, by my con-
fidential agent, General Smith, as soon as he can
have the honor of a conference with you on matters
embraced in the present epoch of our national af-
fairs.
I am, General, yours very truly,
Sam Houston.
But Twiggs had no intention of putting the arms
into the hands of any such Union man as Houston.
He replied curtly that he was without instructions
from the government, and that "after secession, in
case the Executive of the State makes a demand
upon the commander of the Department, he will re-
ceive an answer."
Whether Houston believed that by obtaining pos-
session of the arms he could overawe the disunionists
and prevent the secession of the State, or whether he
merely wished to obtain a definite knowledge of the
purposes of Twiggs, is unknown. His whole course
showed that he preferred to submit to secession rather
than to involve the State in civil war, although, per-
haps, if he had been supported by the Federal Gov-
ernment before the movement became so strong he
might have resisted it. An account given by Rev.
William M. Baker would indicate that he had such a
purpose. A Texan merchant, and intimate friend of
Houston's, stated that Houston informed him that
President Lincoln, although not yet inaugurated, had
sent Colonel F. W. Lander to him with a message
348 SAM HOUSTON
that lie should have all the help he wanted, as soon
as Lincoln took office, if he could only hold the State
until then. Said Houston, "General Twiggs has
agreed to do what he can to help me. I have 800
men waiting to come at a word. Volunteers will
come in. I am sure that I can, with the aid of Gen-
eral Twiggs, hold Texas against any force the Con-
federacy may send." He then made a contract with
the merchant for a supply of rations. The following
is the account of the interview with Houston after he
had received General Twiggs's reply to his mes-
sage : —
"The instant the Governor had locked me with
him in his inner office, he turned to me with rage in
his face. 'Sir,' said he to me, in a manner and tone
which I can never forget, 'Twiggs is a traitor!'
Then he sank down into his chair, the tears trickling
down his heroic countenance, and sobbed like a child.
He then clenched his fist and smote the table, with
what seemed to be a suppressed curse, long and
deep. After he had somewhat recovered he repeated
to me the message that Captain Smith had brought
him from Twiggs. It was in such cautious language
as to the General's -isolation and want of instruc-
tions from Washington that I suggested to Governor
Houston that possibly he misunderstood General
Twiggs. 'No,' the Governor exclaimed, again smit-
ing the table with his huge fist, 'there can be no mis-
take. Twiggs is a traitor ! We are to have a fear-
ful civil war. ' And he appealed to God for wisdom
SECESSION 349
and protection in a manner which touched me to the
heart."
There was unquestionably a force in Texas which
Houston could have called on, ardent supporters of
himself as well as advocates of the Union, and he
might perhaps, with the aid of the United States
troops, have defeated the secession element. But it
would have plunged the State into a civil war, and
the action of Twiggs prevented the show of any com-
manding strength at first to turn the scale in favor
of the Unionists.
The commissioners appointed by the Committee
of Public Safety acted promptly. On February 11
they made a demand upon General Twiggs for the
surrender of all the arms, munitions of war, and pub-
lic property belonging to the United States in the
Department of Texas. There were some negotiations
between the commissioners and the board of officers
appointed by General Twiggs in regard to terms.
Twiggs insisted upon the retention of the arms then
in the hands of the soldiers, and of some pieces of
light artillery. Colonel Benjamin M'Cullogh had
been appointed by the Committee of Public Safety to
raise and take command of troops in behalf of the
State, and appeared in San Antonio with a force of
about 1200 men. The terms of the surrender were
agreed upon. The troops were to have transportation
to the coast, and to be permitted to return to the
United States. The debts due from the quartermas-
ter's department were to be paid out of the funds
350 SAM HOUSTON
delivered to the commissioners. The soldiers were
to retain their arms. The surrender was executed on
February 18, before the people had voted on the
ordinance of secession, and after an order had arrived
from Washington, relieving General Twiggs from
the command of the Department and directing him
to turn it over to Colonel Carlos A. Waite, the
senior officer. Colonel Waite was absent from San
Antonio, but arrived a few hours after the surrender
was made. The number of men surrendered was
about 2500, and the value of the property $1,200,-
000. The sum of $50,000 in money was turned over
to the commissioners, and they afterward seized
130,000 sent to the State to pay the troops. Bodies
of Texan troops were sent to demand the surrender
of the various detachments in the forts and posts
along the Rio Grande and on the frontier, and, after
some indignant remonstrances on the part of the
officers in command, they were given up. Strong
efforts were made to induce the officers and men to
take service with the Confederacy, but only a few of
the officers of Southern birth did so, almost all of
the enlisted men remaining faithful to their flag.
General Twiggs, having accomplished his purpose,
returned to New Orleans, and on March 1 was dis-
missed from the army for treachery by order of Sec-
retary Holt. Owing to the lack of transportation,
but few of the troops were removed from Texas
before the outbreak of the war between the United
States and the Confederacy, and the remainder were
SECESSION 351
made prisoners of war, in violation of the agreement
with the commissioners, by order of Colonel Van
Dorn, and compelled to give their parole not to bear
arms against the Confederacy until exchanged.
Whatever purpose Houston may have entertained
at the beginning of the troubles, he abandoned any
design of forcible resistance to secession after the
surrender of the United States troops. On March
18, after the new administration of Lincoln had
determined to maintain the Union by force. General
Scott sent orders to Colonel Waite to form an in-
trenched camp at Indianola, and put himself in com-
munication with Governor Houston, to offer him
assistance in defense of the Federal authority. If
neither Houston nor any other authority had any
considerable number of men in arms in defense of the
Federal Government, Colonel Waite was to consider
his orders to form an intrenched camp withdrawn.
Colonel Wait6^ communicated with Houston, offering
his assistance, and received the following reply : —
Austin, March 29, 1861.
Dear Sir, — I have received intelligence that you
have, or will soon receive orders to concentrate
United States troops under your command at Indian-
ola, in this State, to sustain me in the exercise of
my official functions. Allow me most respectfully to
decline any such assistance of the United States gov-
ernment, and to most earnestly protest against the
concentration of troops in fortifications in Texas, and
352 SAM HOUSTON
request that you remove all such troops out of the
State at the earliest day practicable, or, at any rate,
by all means take no action towards hostile move-
ments till farther ordered by the Government at
Washington City, or particularly of Texas.
Thine, Sam Houston.
Colonel Lander also wrote to Colonel Waite ad-
vising him to take no action that would give the se-
cession party the idea that the Federal Government
intended to coerce the State. Colonel Waite in-
formed General Scott that it was the feeling of the
Unionists that they could effect a peaceable change in
the views of the inhabitants of the State by means of
the press and the ballot box, and that they believed
that a few thousand dollars in the support of newspa-
pers throughout the State would produce a complete
revolution in public sentiment. There was evidently
at first a considerable Union sentiment among the
people of Texas. In San Antonio there was a strong
party opposed to secession, and in Austin a large
mass meeting was held just before the election on
the secession ordinance, at which there was a pole
erected and a United States flag displayed.
Houston made a speech at Galveston, which was
the hot-bed of secession, a few days before the elec-
tion. When he arrived his friends gathered about
him, and asked him not to speak, as there was immi-
nent danger of mob violence. He replied that he
had been threatened before, and should certainly
SECESSION 353
make his speech. It was delivered from the balcony
of the Tremont House at eleven o'clock in the fore-
noon to an excited throng that filled the street. As
he had often done before, Houston overawed the
crowd, and compelled a respectful attention. Mr.
Thomas North, a Northern man who lived in Texas
during the war, thus describes Houston's appearance
when speaking : —
"There he stood, an old man of seventy years, on
the balcony ten feet above the heads of the thousands
assembled to hear him, where every eye could scan
his magnificent form, six feet and three inches high,
straight as an arrow, with deep-set and penetrating
eyes, looking out from heavy and thundering eye-
brows, a high open forehead, with something of the
infinite intellectual shadowed there, crowned with the
white locks, partly erect, seeming to give capillary
conduction to the electric fluid used by his massive
brain, and a voice of the deep basso tone, which
shook and commanded the soul of the hearer; add-
ing to all this a powerful manner, made up of de-
liberation, self-possession, and restrained majesty of
action, leaving the hearer impressed with the feeling
that more of his power was hidden than revealed.
Thus appeared Sam Houston on this grand occasion,
equal and superior to it, as he always was to every
other. He paralyzed the arm of the mobocrat by his
personal presence, and it was morally impossible for
him to be mobbed in Texas, and, if not there, then
not anywhere."
354 SAAI HOUSTON
He spoke with great force and eloquence of the
disasters which would surely follow secession, and
of the certainty of the defeat of the South. He said :
" Some of you laugh to scorn the idea of bloodshed
as the result of secession, and jocularly propose to
drink all the blood that will ever flow in consequence
of it. But let me tell you what is coming on the
heels of secession. The time will come when your
fathers and husbands, your sons and brothers, will be
herded together like sheep and cattle at the point of
the bayonet ; and your mothers and wives, and sisters
and daughters, will ask, 'Where are they? ' and echo
will answer. Where ? You may, after the sacrifice of
countless millions of treasure and hundreds of thou-
sands of precious lives, as a bare possibility, win
Southern independence, if God be not against you;
but I doubt it. I tell you that, while I believe with
you in the doctrine of state rights, the North is de-
termined to preserve this Union. They are not a
fiery, impulsive people as you are, for they live in
colder climates. But when they begin to move in a
given direction, where great interests are involved,
such as the present issue before the country, they
move with the steady momentum and perseverance of
a mighty avalanche; and what I fear is, they will
overwhelm the South with ignoble defeat, and I
would say Amen to the suffering and defeat I have
pictured, if the present difficulties could find no other
solution, and that, too, by peaceable means. I be-
lieve they can. Otherwise I would say, 'Better die
freemen than live slaves.' "
SECESSION 355
In conclusion he said, however, that he should
abide by the action of his State : —
"Whatever course my State shall determine to
pursue, my faith in state supremacy and state rights
will carry my sympathies with her. And as Henry
Clay, my political opponent on annexation, said,
when asked why he allowed his son to go into the
Mexican war, ' My country, right or wrong, ' so I
say. My State, right or wrong."
But Houston could not stem the tide. The seces-
sionists were active and violent. Armed bands in-
timidated the citizens, and mob rule prevailed. In
some sections Union men were hung, or compelled to
flee for their lives. Houses were burned, and prop-
erty destroyed. The Union men were still farther
discouraged by the news of the surrender of Twiggs,
and that the Federal Government made no sign of
giving them support. But the prevalence of the
Union sentiment was indicated by the fact that at the
election out of about 80,000 voters only 52,246 cast
their ballots. Of these 34,415 were for secession,
and 13,841 against it.
The convention reassembled after the election, and
took steps to unite Texas with the Confederacy. It
accepted the Confederate Constitution, and elected
members of the Confederate Congress. A committee
was appointed to inform Houston of its action. He
protested against it, declaring that the convention
had no farther authority from the people after it had
submitted the ordinance of secession for their ratifica-
356 SAM HOUSTON
tion. In the mean time the Confederate authorities
had assumed jurisdiction over Texas. Before the
convention had reassembled, L. Pope Walker, the
Confederate Secretary of War, sent a circular to
Houston announcing that the President of the Con-
federate States assumed control of all military opera-
tions in the State, and over lall questions relating to
foreign powers. Houston replied that by the act of
secession Texas had become independent, and was
not yet united with the Confederacy. He denied
the authority of the convention to unite Texas with
the Confederate States without the sanction of the
people. The protest was in mild terms, and at its
conclusion he said : —
"The States which have formed the Provisional
Government have his ardent wishes for their welfare
and prosperity. The people of Texas are now bound
to them in feeling and sympathy no less closely than
when members of a common Union. Like circum-
stances induced withdrawal from the Union. Like
peril and uncertainty are before them. No matter
what the position of Texas may be, she cannot but
feel that ties of no common nature bind her to those
States. But, however close those ties may be in
feeling, there are requirements due the national pride
and dignity of a people who have just resumed their
nationality which do not sanction the course pursued
in annexing them to a new government without their
knowledge or consent."
On March 14, the convention adopted an ordinance
SECESSION - 357
requiring the State officers to take the oath of alle-
giance to the Confederacy. Houston and E. W.
Cave, the Secretary of State, declined to obey the
order. When the day came to take the oath the
presiding officer of the convention called three times,
"Sam Houston, Sam Houston, Sam Houston," but
the governor remained in his office in the basement
of the Capitol, whittling his pine stick, and hearing
the echo of the noise and tumult in the hall above
his head. Houston and Cave were declared deposed
from their offices, and Edward Clark, the lieutenant
governor, was installed as governor. Houston pro-
tested, and appealed to the legislature, which assem-
bled on the 18th, but it confirmed the action of the
convention. Houston issued an address to the peo-
ple protesting against the illegal acts and usurpations
of the convention. But he declared that he should
make no attempt to retain his position by force. He
said : —
"I love Texas too well to bring civil strife and
bloodshed upon her. To avert this calamity I shall
make no endeavor to maintain my authority as chief
executive of the State, except by the peaceful exer-
cise of my functions. When I can no longer do this
I shall calmly withdraw from the scene, leaving the
government in the hands of those who have usurped
its authority, but still claiming that I am its chief
executive. I protest in the name of the people of
Texas against all the acts and doings of this conven-
tion, and declare them null and void. I solemnly
358 . SAM HOUSTON
protest against the act of its members, who are bound
by no oath themselves, in declaring my office vacant
because I refuse to appear before it and take the oath
prescribed."
He still continued to go to his office, but on the
morning of March 21 he found that Governor Clark
had installed himself in the room before him. A
hostile newspaper gives this account of their inter-
view : —
"By and by the deposed Governor came hobbling
into the office, old Sam's San Jacinto wound having
broken out afresh, as it always does on occasions of
political trial. Perceiving Governor Clark occupy-
ing his chair, old Sam addressed him : —
"'Well, Governor Clark,' giving great emphasis
to the title, 'you are an early riser.'
"'Yes, General ^^ with a great stress upon the
military title of his predecessor, 'I am illustrating the
old maxim, the early bird catches the worm. '
" 'Well, Governor Clark, I hope you will find it
an easier seat than I have found it. '
" 'I '11 endeavor to make it so. General, by con-
forming to the clearly expressed wish of the people
of Texas. '
" The General, having brought a large lunch basket
with him, proceeded to put in numerous little arti-
cles of private property, and to stow them away very
carefully. Catching his foot in a hole in the carpet,
and stumbling, the General suggested to Governor
Clark that the new Government ought to afford a new
SECESSION 359
carpet for the Governor's office, whereupon the Gov-
ernor remarked that the Executive of Texas could
get along very well without a carpet.
"Having gathered up his duds, old Sam made a lit-
tle farewell speech very much in the style of Cardinal
Wolsey, declaring his conviction that, as in the past,
Texas would call him from his retirement, and he
hoped Governor Clark would be able to give as good
an account of his stewardship as he could now ren-
der. Halting at the door the General made a pro-
found bow, and with an air of elaborate dignity said,
'Good-day, Governor C-1-a-r-k.' 'Good-day, Gen-
eral Houston,' was the Governor's response."
Houston left Austin, and returned to his residence
in Huntsville, a small town in Walker County. An
enemy wrote, "Houston has sunk out of sight, leav-
ing but a ripple on the surface."
Houston's action in reference to the secession of
Texas has been much criticised, and he has been
accused of inconsistency and pusillanimity. He cer-
tainly did not take the course of Francis P. Blair in
Missouri in organizing an armed resistance to seces-
sion. He might possibly have done so, if he had
been supported by General Twiggs, as Blair was by
General Lyon. But it is probable that he would only
have hoped to strengthen and give force to the Union
sentiment, and overawe the secession element without
bloodshed. It is within the bounds of possibility
that, if Twiggs had taken a different course, the
Union feeling might have prevailed. It is doubtful
360 SAM HOUSTON
if the majority of the people of Texas were in favor of
secession at the time the vote was taken. But events
shaped themselves so that there could not have been
a resistance without a bloody civil war within the
State. Houston loved his people too much to precip-
itate this. It is to be remembered, also, that Hous-
ton was a Southern man, and, while he ardently loved
the Union, and regretted secession as a matter of
policy, his feelings were with his section. When the
die was cast, his hopes and sympathies were for the
success of the South. There is no reason to doubt
his sincerity in saying that he yielded up his office
rather than subject the people to the horrors of a civil
war, and that he was with his State, right or wrong.
His courage and firmness were abundantly proved in
his resistance to the tumults and violence of secession,
and the very serious dangers which accompanied
them. The excitement ran tremendously high, and
it was by no means impossible that some "Texan
Brutus " might have taken Senator Iverson's advice
to assassinate him. Events were too strong for Hous-
ton. The position of Texas made her naturally a
member of the Southern Confederacy. The Union
sentiment was rather inert and indefinite, instead of
active and passionate like that of the secessionists.
It could not have triumphed without a civil war, and
it is doubtful if a majority of the Unionists were
ready for that, even if Houston had been willing to
lead them. The people were mainly Southern, and
when the Federal Government proclaimed its purpose
SECESSION 361
of coercing the seceded States, all but a few, except-
ing the German colonists, threw themselves heart and
soul into the Confederate cause. It is possible that
Houston hoped for a brief time that Texas, having
seceded, would resume her independent sovereignty,
and he was suspected of working for that end. But
he must have soon seen that it was impossible, and
have recognized that the fortunes of Texas were
bound up with those of the rest of the slave-holding
States. He realized the probabilities of the failure
of the Confederacy, but he would not join in over-
throwing the fortunes of his section, and he did not
feel that allegiance to the Union which would com-
pel him to fight against his people. His course was
honorable and consistent from his point of view, and
it was that almost universally taken by the original
Union men of the South. He refused the offer of a
major-general's commission from President Lincoln,
and had no hope or ambition that was not identified
with the welfare of the people of Texas. His eldest
son entered the Confederate service, and he fitted
him out with his arms and equipments. There is a
good-humored jest attributed to him to the effect that
he told his son that the most appropriate place for his
secession rosette would be on the inside of the tail of
his coat, but he subsequently said that if he had more
sons old enough for the service they should go. He
was for the Union, if it could be preserved by peaceful
means, but for the South when the issue was made of
resistance or submission to Federal coercion.
362 SA3I HOUSTON
Daring his administration as governor there was
no opportunity for attention to the internal affairs of
the State. Everything was swept into the vortex of
political strife and excitement. The only measure he
could accomplish was the organization of a ranging
force for the protection of the frontier, which fell to
pieces during the secession excitement, leaving the
people defenseless after the United States troops sur-
rendered.
CHAPTER XVI
LAST YEARS — DEATH
Houston had not taken the means to secure for
himself a life of luxurious ease after his retirement
from public life. He had had ample opportunities to
acquire wealth by obtaining tracts of rich lands and
advantageous holdings in the newly founded towns, by
which many of his associates laid the foundations of
large fortunes, but he did not take them, nor did he
engage in any of the schemes for the profitable devel-
opment of the resources of a new country. He was
indifferent to money, and during his early career in
Texas lived in a careless frontier fashion, which often
left him in straits for the means to purchase the com-
mon necessaries of life. After his second marriage
he lived in a more orderly manner, but without much
more attention to the accrmiulation of property. He
was always generous after the early Texas fashion,
and his horses and belongings were at the service of
any one in want or for the needs of his neighbors.
The salary of his public office was always expended
liberally, and he had no professional income, his
practice as a lawyer having only been in the early
days, when he addressed frontier juries without much
reference to statute and precedent, and took his pay
364 SAM HOUSTON
in whatever came handy. He had been almost en-
tirely in public life, and lived by it. In his old age
he had only a small piece of property near the town
of Huntsville, a house consisting of a double log-
cabin, and a limited amount of land around it. To
this he retired, after his deposition as governor,
without an occupation or an opportunity to earn an
income. His later years were undoubtedly passed in
poverty, particularly after the commercial and indus-
trial isolation of the Confederacy set in, with its
necessary privations upon the whole of the commu-
nity, but the story that he and his family suffered for
the want of the common necessaries of life is exag-
gerated. They lived like their neighbors, and in the
productive soil and genial climate there was no want
of the means of living, whatever there may have been
of the luxuries.
Shortly after his retirement, Houston passed
through the city of Houston on his way to Sour
Lake, a bathing place of medicinal waters in Jeffer-
son County, which he visited for the benefit of his
health. It was the time of the hottest ebullition of
the secession excitement. War had been declared,
and the community was in all the furor of military
enthusiasm. No one doubted of the success of the
South, and any one who should venture to say that it
was not sure of victory was regarded as a traitor and
a public enemy. Houston was asked to speak by his
friends, and there were violent threats from the se-
cession element that he should not be allowed to do
LAST YEARS 365
so. He treated tlie threats witli his usual contempt,
and delivered his speech in the evening from the steps
of the Academy. His friends armed themselves to
protect him, and surrounded the platform. There was
a secession torchlight procession, which paraded up
and down the street while he was speaking, and a
great deal of noise and disturbance. What was rare
with Houston, he sometimes lost the thread of his dis-
course, and turned to a friend near him to ask him
to supply it. But he spoke with his usual force and
courage. He told his excited and confident audience
that the result of the war would be against them.
The South would win victories at first, but the North
had the whole of Europe to draw upon to supply its
armies, and would work with the relentless force of a
machine, while the South was isolated, and had no
resources with which to make good its inevitable ex-
haustion.
There was an uneasiness about what Houston might
do, and a dread of his power and influence upon the
people among the secession element. Although he
had peacefully retired from the governorship, he was
suspected of plotting either with the Federal Govern-
ment or to have Texas set up for herself as an inde-
pendent Republic. On April 4, 1861, Governor
Clark wrote to President Davis, urging the Confed-
erate Government to take more effective measures for
the protection of the frontier. He said: "It is more
than probable that an effort will soon be made by the
submission party of this State, with General Hous-
366 SAM HOUSTON
ton at its head, to convert Texas into an independent
Republic, and one of the most effective arguments
will be that the Confederate States has supplied the
place of the 2500 United States troops formerly
upon our frontier with only a single regiment; "
and there are other references in the correspondence
of the time to such a design on the part of Houston.
But his enemies took counsel of their fears. There
is no evidence that Houston entertained any such
purpose, and he certainly took no active steps to
bring it about. On the contrary as the war kindled,
his sympathies were strongly for the South, and he
urged the most strenuous measures of resistance. In
a speech at a festival of Baylor University at Inde-
pendence, May 10, 1861, Houston declared his alle-
giance to his section, and his readiness to enter the
ranks, if necessary, to repel invasion. He said : —
"Now that not only coercion, but a vindictive war
is to be inaugurated, I stand ready to redeem my
pledge to the people. Whether the Convention was
right or wrong is not now the question. Whether I
was treated justly or unjustly is not now to be con-
sidered. I put all that under my feet and there it
shall stay. Let those who stood by me do the same,
and let us all show at a time when perils environ
our beloved land we know how to be patriots and
Texans. Let us have no past but the glorious past,
whose glorious deeds shall stimulate us to resistance
to tyranny and wrong, and, burying in the grave of
oblivion all our past differences, let us go forward
LAST YEARS 367
determined not to yield until our independence is
acknowledged; or, if not acknowledged, wrung from
our enemies by the force of our valor. It is no time
to turn back now; the people bave put tbeir bands to
tbe plougb; tbey must go forward; to recede would
be worse than ignominy. Better meet war in its
deadliest shape than cringe before an enemy whose
wrath we have invoked. I make no pretension as to
myself. I have yielded up office, and sought retire-
ment to preserve peace among our people. My ser-
vices are perhaps not important enough to be desired.
Others are perhaps more competent to lead the people
through the revolution. I have been with them
through the fiery ordeal once, and I know that with
prudence and discipline their courage will surmount
all obstacles. Should the tocsin of war, calling the
people to resist the invader, reach the retirement to
which I shall go, I will heed neither the denunciations
of my enemies or the clamor of my own friends, but
will join the ranks of my countrymen to defend Texas
once again."
He did not forget his humorous sarcasm upon his
opponents, who had been very vigorous in bringing
on the war, but less decided in taking part in it.
Mr. North gives an account of a scene at a review in
Galveston in which he scored them in his rough and
popular fashion: —
"During the first year of the war. Colonel Moore
had organized a splendid regiment of 1100 young
men, volunteers mostly from Galveston, finely
368 SAM HOUSTON
equipped, of which Sam Houston, Jr. , was a member.
The}^ were on dress parade daily, and presented a
charming appearance. It was as fine a regiment as
went to the war from any section of the country.
The Colonel was justly proud of them, and fond of
exhibiting their superior drill and 'dress' to the
public, and particularly to old military men. They
fought their first battle at Pittsburgh Landing, or
Shiloh, as the Confederates called it. But before
leaving the island for the seat of war, the Colonel
invited General Houston to review his regiment.
Now Judge Campbell, of one of the judicial districts
of Texas, and Williamson S. Oldham, member of
the Confederate Congress, had been the old General's
bitter enemies during the canvass on secession.
They had followed him night and day throughout the
State. On the day set for him to review and put the
regiment through some military evolutions, the Gen-
eral was on hand at the hour and place. This called
out a large concourse of people to witness the per-
formance ; the day was sunny and beautiful ; the hour
ten in the forenoon; the regiment was in complete
uniform and perfectly armed; their arms glistened in
the sunbeams as they stood in perfect 'dress ' and at
'present arms,' when the 'hero of San Jacinto,' sup-
ported by their Colonel, stood in front. He was the
hero of San Jacinto sure enough, for there he stood
in the same military suit he had worn in 1836 at the
battle of San Jacinto, when Santa Anna was cap-
tured, his pants tucked in the top of military boots;
LAST YEARS 369
suspended at his side was the same old sword, and on
his head was a weather-beaten, light-colored, broad-
brimmed planter hat, the left side buttoned up to
the crown. There he stood, the very impersonation
of the olden times. It was a sight for sensation.
All eyes were now upon him, some of them dimmed
with tears, and many a throat of soldier and spectator
was choking down feeling unutterable, — the writer
among the rest. Not a word had yet passed the Gen-
eral's lips, but now the Colonel passed him his own
sword and told him to proceed. Then came : —
"'Shoulder arms.
"'Right about face.' The regiment now facing to
the rear, the General cried out in stentorian tones of
sarcasm: 'Do you see anything of Judge Campbell
or Williamson S. Oldham here? '
"'No,' was the emphatic reply.
"'Well,' said the General, 'they are not found at
the front nor even at the rear.
"'Right about, front face.
"'Eyes right. Do you see anything of Judge
Campbell's son here? '
"'No, he has gone to Paris to school,' responded
the regiment.
'"Eyes left. Do you see anything of young Sam
Houston here ? '
"'Yes,' was the thrilling response.
"'Eyes front. Do you see anything of old Sam
Houston here? ' By this time the climax of excite-
ment was reached, and the regiment and citizens re-
370 SAM HOUSTON
sponded in thunder tones, 'Yes ! ' and then united in a
triple round of three times three and a tiger for the
old hero. Thereupon he returned the Colonel his
sword with the remark: 'There, Colonel, that will
do, I leave you to manage the rest of the manoeu-
vring,' and retired from dress parade."
But Houston's health soon began to fail. His
splendid constitution, which had withstood his
wounds, his hardships, and his excesses without giving
way, began to feel the effects of old age. His old
wounds renewed their pains, and he was obliged to
walk with a crutch and a cane. He was attacked by
painful and wasting illnesses, and at one time in the
fall of 1862 he was very near death. His friend,
Mr. Hamilton Stewart, gives the following account
of the occasion : —
"While he was living at Cedar Point the word
came down that he was dying. I took the next boat
up, and found Mr. Houston was very sick with the
fever. I remained for some days, doing all I could.
The house stood in a grove of cedars. The time was
the fall of the year. The wind blew and the rain
fell. The surroundings were about as desolate as
could be. A young doctor, who hadn't had much
experience, was attending Mr. Houston. One night
he came up and called me out. He said he thought
the end was near, and asked me to tell Mr. Houston.
I didn't much like the duty. After thinking it over
I went into the room where Mr. Houston was lying,
and told him what the doctor said. He did n't make
LAST YEARS 371
any reply for a few minutes. Then lie turned to me,
and said, ' Call tlie family. ' I went out and aroused
Mrs. Houston and the children. After they came in
Mr. Houston said, 'Call the servants.' All gathered
about the bedside. Mr. Houston proceeded calmly
and slowly to give detailed instructions about what
he wanted done. He had some advice for each one
present. When he had finished he called for the
Bible and had a psalm read. Turning to two daugh-
ters he asked them to sing a hymn, which he desig-
nated. The girls began, but broke down sobbing.
Mr. Houston took it up and finished it. After that
he sent them all to bed again. He was very low,
but he did not die at that time. When he became
better I returned to Galveston. As I bade him good-
by he sent an expression of his kindest feeling to all
of his friends. Then, warming up, he said, 'Tell
my enemies I am not dead yet.' "
His mind, afflicted with the calamities of the coun-
try, and doubtful of the success of his section, re-
acted upon his bodily strength. He became melan-
choly and despondent, and in a measure lost his hold
upon life. To his old friends he spoke doubtfully of
the success of the South, and looked beyond to the
results which would follow the restoration of the
Union. To one of them he said that the immense
fortunes which were being made in the North during
the war would seek an outlet as soon as it was over,
and that within less than fifteen years the cars would
be running through Texas to the City of Mexico and
372 SAM HOUSTON
to San Francisco. At times tlie old spirit flashed
out. The military officers of the Confederacy had
established a very stringent system of martial law in
Texas, by which all the male inhabitants over six-
teen years of age were required to register them-
selves, and obtain passes from the provost-marshals.
Houston paid no attention to the order, and at one
time was halted by a superserviceable official, who de-
manded his pass. The old man waved him aside with
a frowning countenance, and replied, " San Jacinto is
my pass through Texas." He wrote a letter of ear-
nest protest against the proclamation of martial law,
issued May 31, 1861, by General P. D. Hebert,
commanding the Department of Texas, to Governor
Lubbock. He charged General Hebert with the
abrogation of the principles of individual liberty,
and appealed to the governor to maintain the rights
of the people. The decrees of banishment against
Union citizens, and the system of oppression and in-
timidation, were carried out in the most harsh and
vindictive manner, and Houston revolted against the
needless tyranny. His letter to the governor was
not published until six months after it was written,
and made a profound impression upon the people,
discouraged by the reverses to the Confederate ar-
mies, and indignant at the military rule of the Con-
federate officers in Texas. But Houston was still
firm for resistance to the North. After the recapture
of Galveston by the Texan forces on January 1,
1863, he wrote a congratulatory letter to General
LAST YEARS 373
Magrucler, in wliicli lie thanked him for "driving
from the soil a ruthless enemy," and said that he
would have paid him his respects personally, but that
he had just risen from a sick-bed. The Federal sol-
diers, captured at Galveston, were treated with great
harshness, and confined in prison like common crimi-
nals. Houston was indignant at this unmanly con-
duct on the part of the Confederate authorities, and
applied in person to the superintendent of the peni-
tentiary to remove the officers and men from convict
cells to quarters more appropriate to prisoners of
war. The superintendent did so, and took them into
his own house, where they remained until they were
exchanged.
Houston's last speech was delivered in the city of
Houston March 18, 1863. The animosity and bit-
terness with which he had been regarded for his
course in opposing secession had died away, and a
feeling of respect for his venerable age, and a con-
sciousness that he had been right in his prediction of
the evils which would follow the attempt to dissolve
the Union, added to the consideration due to his his-
tory and achievements. He was listened to with re-
spectful attention, and spoke with much pathos of his
age and the approaching end of his life. He said : —
"Ladies and Fellow - Citizens : With feelings of
pleasure and friendly greeting I once again stand be-
fore this, an assemblage of my countrymen. As I
behold this large assemblage, who, from their homes
and daily toil, have come once again to greet the
374 SAM HOUSTON
man who has so often known their kindness and
affection, I can feel that even yet I hold a place in
their high regard. This manifestation is the highest
compliment that can be paid to the citizen and pa-
triot. As you have gathered here to listen to the
sentiments of my heart, knowing that the days draw
nigh nnto me when all thoughts of ambition and
worldly pride give place to the earnestness of age, I
know you will bear with me, while with calmness and
without the fervor and eloquence of youth, I express
those sentiments which seem natural to my mind in
the view of the condition of the country. I have been
buffeted by the waves as I have been borne along-
time 's ocean, until, shattered and worn, I approach
the narrow isthmus which divides it from the sea of
eternity beyond. Ere I step forward to journey
through the pilgrimage of death, I would say that
all my thoughts and all my hopes are with my coun-
try. If one impulse arises above another, it is for
the happiness of these people ; the welfare and glory
of Texas will be the uppermost thought while the
spark of life lingers in this breast."
He spoke hopefully of the probabilities of the suc-
cess of the Confederacy. He pointed out the favora-
ble chances of the interference of France in behalf of
the South in the support of its Mexican scheme;
spoke of the dissatisfaction caused by the depreciation
of the greenback currency in the North, of the dan-
gers of the drafts to the Federal authority, and the
weariness of the Northwest with the war. His voice
LAST YEARS 375
was still for prolonged and desperate resistance. He
said : —
"Thus, although I do not look with confidence to
these results, nor do I advance them as more than
mere probabilities, they certainly indicate that there
is discord and discontent at the North, and these
always will embarrass its cause, and endanger its suc-
cess. Yet I do not trust to these things, nor would
I have you do so. Let us go forward, nerved to
nobler deeds than we have yet given to history. Let
us bid defiance to all the hosts that our enemies can
bring against us. Can Lincoln expect to subjugate
a people thus resolved? No! From every conflict
they will arise the stronger and more resolute. Are
we deprived of the luxuries which our enemies pos-
sess? We have learned how little necessary they
are, and it is no privation to do without them."
But his darker forebodings of the fate of the Con-
federacy were destined to be fulfilled. On the 4th
of July, 1863, Yicksburg fell, and Houston must
have realized that it was the death stroke to the cause
of the South. He was then on his death-bed. His
bodily forces had gradually failed him, without any
sharp attack of illness. He spent much of his time
in reading the Bible, and in prayers for his country
and his family. He received the ministrations of a
Presbyterian clergyman, with whom he had previously
been in antagonism, but with whom he was reconciled
by the touch of death. All his family were about
him, except his eldest son, Lieutenant Sam Houston,
37-6 SAM HOUSTON
who was wounded and a prisoner in the hands of the
enemy. "The day before his death," his daughter
writes, "he fell into a comatose state from which we
could not rouse him; but during the next forenoon
we heard his voice in a tone of entreaty, and, listen-
ing to the feeble sound, we caught the words 'Texas!
Texas ! ' Soon afterward my mother was sitting by
his bedside with his hand in hers, and his lips moved
once again. 'Margaret,' he said, and the voice we
loved was silent forever. As the sun sank below the
horizon his spirit left this earth for a better land."
He died July 26, 1863, aged seventy years, four
months, and twenty-four days. He left a widow and
eight children, some of whom have since distinguished
themselves in the political and professional life of
Texas. His will was peculiar and characteristic.
After bequeathing his property to his family, he said
in regard to the education of his sons : - —
"My will is that my sons should receive solid and
useful education and that no portion of their time be
devoted to the study of abstract science. I greatly
desire that they may possess a thorough knowledge of
the English language, with a good knowledge of the
Latin language. I request that they be instructed
in the Holy Scriptures, and next to these that they
be rendered thoroughly in a knowledge of geography
and history. I wish my sons to be taught an entire
contempt for novels and light reading, as well as for
the morals and manners with whom they may be
associated or instructed."
DEATH 377
He bequeathed liis sword to Ms eldest son in these
terms : —
"To my eldest son, Sam Houston, I bequeath my
sword, worn in the battle of San Jacinto, to be drawn
only in defense of the constitution, the laws and lib-
erties of his country. If any attempt be made to
assail one of these I wish it to be used in vindica-
tion."
The will was dated the 2d of April, 1863. His
remains were buried at Huntsville, with a plain slab,
bearing the inscription, "General Sam Houston.
Born March 2, 1793. Died July 26, 1863; " and he
sleeps beneath the tangled vines and grass, after a
life of tumult and vicissitude such as falls to the lot
of few mortals. At the winter session following his
death the legislature adopted resolutions expressing
regret at the extinction of so great a light in the
dark hours of the nation's existence, and paying tri-
bute to his unblemished patriotism and untiring re-
gard for the people of Texas. It afterward appro-
priated 11700 to Mrs. Houston to pay the salary for
his unfinished term as governor. The mourning of
the people of Texas was deep and sincere for one
who, with all his faults and all the antagonisms he
had aroused, was regarded as the national hero, and
detraction was silent in the sense of loss, and the
gratitude and reverence for one who embodied the
popular pride and typified a heroic history.
CHAPTER XVII
CHAKACTEKISTICS
Houston, althougli with such marked and peculiar
individual characteristics, was essentially the product
of his time and circumstance. He grew out of that
condition in which the generation of the descendants
of the original settlers of the country were brought
into contact with the forces of nature and the savage
inhabitants in a way to influence their native char-
acter as well as their lives. They were born into the
pioneer period, instead of coming to it in mature life,
and they had not shared the original education and
training of their ancestors. It was a state of barba-
rism in its outward forms, and they were more essen-
tially a part of it than those who had preceded them.
Their education was limited and meagre, and their
training and governing influences were in the life of
the wilderness, the primeval forest, which enveloped
them with its perils and hardships, its temptings to
adventure, and the labors necessary to carve out a
home in it. This produced a hardy and indomitable
spirit, which found its relief in the enthusiasm of
perilous adventure and in the pursuit of game, and
a vigor and energy of the bodily powers which found
their keenest zest in dangerous sports and exhausting
CHARACTERISTICS 379
trials of strength. It was a race of vikings, drawn
by passion and exuberant energy to the life of the
forest and the adventures of the wilderness, as their
prototypes had been to those of the sea. They re-
tained the restraints of their English descent, and
their instinct was to found a settled commui^y with
all the germs of civilization, but in their character-
istic types they were possessed by an overmastering
impulse for adventure, and the hand-to-hand struggle
with unsubdued nature. They assimilated to a cer-
tain degree the ways and customs of the aboriginal
inhabitants with whom they came in contact, with
whom they fought, and in the midst of whom they
lived. They had the migratory instinct and the fond-
ness for wild life of the Indians, and, if they were
governed by the higher traditions and motives of civi-
lization, their lives and natures were also tinctured
with savage passions and impulses. Sometimes the
resemblance and influence were developed in a re-
markable degree.
The kinship of Houston with the Indian character
has already been noticed. It led him, when a youth,
to desert the restraints of even a frontier civilization,
and take up his home among them, and he manifested
the characteristic qualities and something of the man-
ners of an Indian chief throughout his whole life.
His powers of popular oratory, his perception of char-
acter and his influence over men, his courage and
bold conceptions of policy, his generosity and indif-
ference to wealth, were the characteristics of a barba-
380 SAM HOUSTON
rian leader. Then Ms undisguised personal vanity,
his tricky cunning, and his passionate and reckless
temperament were alike the attributes of the Indian.
He might have figured as one of the leaders of the
Greeks at the siege of Troy, with their practical wis-
dom and their childish simplicity. It has been said
that if he had been bound naked upon the back of a
wild horse like Mazeppa the first tribe he came to
would have elected him a prince; but it would have
been a wandering tribe, and not a civilized and set-
tled people. He owed his leadership in Texas to the
conditions of tumult and adventure into which the
people were thrown, since their lives represented in
many ways the features of primitive barbarism. This
is not to say that they were barbarians by nature,
but in their strife with the wilderness and their
hostile contact with the Indians and the Mexicans
they were subject to all the conditions of primitive
and incessant warfare which colored their lives and
governed their actions. Houston's later life mani-^
fested distinct traces of his primitive habits and
training, and revealed his limitations, in spite of the
practical sagacity and broad wisdom which frequently
characterized his statesmanship. He was out of
place in the Senate, in contact with minds trained
to think within the lines of civilized education, and
to argue logically upon legal premises. He never
adapted himself to its atmosphere or acquired its
forms of oratory. He was like an Indian chief in
a modern legislature. His strength was when he
CHARACTERISTICS 381
could appeal to the thoughts and feelings of the com-
mon people, sway them by his vigorous and somewhat
histrionic eloquence, tickle them by his familiar hu-
mor, and influence them by his shrewd common sense.
It is doubtful if there has been in modern times
any such orator for a crowd, except, perhaps, Daniel
O'Connell. Certainly there has been none in Ameri-
can history who could so sway a frontier audience.
It used to be said that there were but two things that
could draw out the people of Texas, — a circus and
Sam Houston. Time and again he awed their turbu-
lent spirits when they were in a state of the highest
excitement and passion, and when any other man
would have been howled down or subjected to bodily
violence. Time and again he converted popular as-
semblages to his own way of thinking, in spite of the
most violent prejudice, and his political power was
based on his popular eloquence. Yet he was far
from being a demagogue. He did not flatter the
passions and prejudices of the multitude, or govern
his opinions by theirs. He withstood them with
manly courage when there was occasion, and, if he
could not convert them, vindicated himself. His
power over the people was due to his genuine sympa-
thy with them, as well as to his personal and popular
gifts. He felt as they did, and his desires and am-
bitions were for the welfare and prosperity of those
who tilled the soil, and built homes in the wilderness
with their own hands. He had no liking for, or
affiliation with, that class who were endeavoring to
382 SAM HOUSTON
build up a slave oligarchy at the South, and regarded
them as the enemies of the section as well as of the
nation. The most of his political quarrels were from
the rivalries of ambitious schemers, eager for con-
quest or personal power at the expense of the people.
His own personal ambition was predominant, but it
was based upon the welfare of the people, and he
sacrificed it rather than submit to their erroneous
judgment, and lead them in the way to ruin. In the
affection and confidence of the people he had no com-
petitor, and when they were swept away from him
by the passion and excitement of the outbreak of the
civil war, there was no one who could take his place
as a popular leader.
As a soldier Houston's career was too brief and
limited to entitle him to rank among distinguished
military leaders. In his first campaign he was
merely the youthful subordinate who had only the
opportunity to display his courage and dash, and
acquire a reputation for bravery. In the second
there were no conditions which involved accomplished
military strategy, or tactical skill in battle. The
only choice was either to meet the enemy in a mass
at the threshold of the country, or allow him to pene-
trate within it, at the cost of the destruction of the
settlements along the line of march, in the expectation
that he would either divide his forces, Or that they
would become weakened by being drawn away from
their base, so that they could be attacked with an
assurance of victory. The decision simply required
CHARACTERISTICS 383
the exercise of practical judgment and common sense.
There may be doubt whether the fighting quality of
the Texans would not have enabled them to defeat
Santa Anna's army with even such odds as there
were at the beginning, but the chances were uncertain,
and a defeat would have meant the destruction of the
army and the subjugation of the country. It was a
risk which the circumstances would not justify, and
Houston was governed by wisdom as well as prudence
in the course which he took. The battle of San
Jacinto required no tactical manoeuvring. The only
thing to be done was to fall on the enemy with all the
force of a sudden and crushing attack, and to trust to
the elan and vigor of the Texan soldiers to overwhelm
the feebler physique and fainter spirit of the Mexi-
can. It simply required a leader to head the assault,
keep his men in line, and restrain their fire until the
deadly moment. This Houston did, and it may be
said that the most accomplished soldier could have
done no more. What Houston might have done with
a larger army and a more extensive field of opera-
tions can only be a matter of conjecture. He simply
accomplished what the circumstances permitted, and
displayed his natural capacity and common sense, but
it was not enough to entitle him to a place in the
ranks of trained and skillful military leaders. His
enemies affected to doubt his physical courage, and
ascribed his retreat to personal timidity. But he was
wounded in leading assaults in both the battles in
which he was engaged, and that may be taken to set-
384 SAM HOUSTON
tie the question of his courage. It was still farther
demonstrated throughout his life by his firmness in
facing turbulent mobs, and in withstanding the
threats of open and secret violence which so often
accompanied his political action. It is true that he
did not have that fighting disposition and that fondness
for personal combat which characterized the fiery
spirits of some of his associates and rivals. He was
not a fire-eater or a desperado. He had too much
common sense to put his life at the call of any indi-
vidual who desired to provoke him to a duel, and
would not give his enemies the chance of overthrow-
ing his policy by killing him. No one but his antag-
onists blamed him for this wise course, even if there
had been no moral principle involved, and it is
enough to say that he could not have held his place
in such a state of society as that in which he lived
from his youth up without having given abundant
proof of his physical courage.
As a statesman he showed broad wisdom and prac-
tical sagacity. His action in the creation of a work-
ing government for the Republic of Texas, without
means, and in a turbulent and scattered society, amid
the opposition and intrigue of ambitious rivals, how-
ever much he may have been aided by some of his
associates and by the support of the more intelligent
element among the people, was a proof of his great
administrative capacity, and the chief credit is due to
his wisdom and influence. His course in restraining
the eager adventurers who came to the country for
CHARACTERISTICS 385
glory and conquest, and the restless spirits among the
settlers from undertaking foolish and reckless at-
tempts at the invasion of Mexico, showed his sound
and practical jvidgment, and saved the country from
great calamities, if not from destruction. His treat-
ment of Santa Anna manifested his wisdom, as well
as his magnanimity, and his dealings with the Indians
were those of enlightened statesmanship as well as
philanthropy. His prudent and practical economy
rescued the Republic from financial collapse, and
his negotiations with foreign nations were shrewd
and skillful in effect, while dignified in manner and
elevated in purpose. They did much to preserve
Texas from being attacked by Mexico, and undoubt-
edly contributed greatly to the annexation of Texas
to the United States at the time it was accomplished.
Considering the enormous difficulties of creating a
government out of such materials, the troubles result-
ing from the turbulence and lawlessness of the adven-
turers and the restless and desperate opposition of
rivals, the dangers of invasion from Mexico, the con-
stant menace and trouble from the Indians, and the
lack of means and credit, it must be admitted that
Houston accomplished a task in the highest degree
creditable to his wisdom and sagacity, and which it
is, perhaps, not too much to say that no other could
have done so well.
In the field of national statesmanship Houston
exhibited equal qualities of broad wisdom, firmness,
and courage. He perceived the dangers which threat-
386 SAM HOUSTON
ened his section from the aggressive designs of the
leading slave-holders, and had the courage to oppose
them at the cost of his political fortunes. To him
and to Benton is due the credit of understanding and
advocating the true interests of the South, as weU as
of the nation, and their position was such that it vin-
dicated their courage as well as their statesmanship.
It was easy for Northern statesmen, representing the
predominant sentiment of their constituents, to op-
pose schemes for the territorial extension of slavery,
but it was quite another matter for representatives of
the South to oppose the apparent interests of their
section, and all the force of active political intrigue
working upon popular feeling. Houston's speeches
on the Kansas-Nebraska bill show a prophetic pre-
science, as well as a commanding eloquence, and
vindicate his right to a high rank among American
statesmen. Almost alone he advocated wisdom and
justice in the treatment of the Indians, and the plans
which he urged for the improvement of their condi-
tion would have saved the nation from the just re-
proach of injustice and neglect towards a feeble and
helpless race. Some of his schemes were less wise,
such as the attempt to induce the United States to
assume a protectorate over Mexico, and the delusive
vision of the presidency led him for a time into affili-
ation with Know-Nothingism ; but as a whole his
action in the legislative councils of the nation was
creditable to his wisdom and sagacity. At the out-
break of the civil war Houston manifested his enlight-
CHARACTERISTICS 387
ened devotion to the Union, and his appreciation of
the perils and calamities in which secession would
involve the South. He resisted the folly and mad-
ness so long as it could be done by peaceful means,
but events were too strong for him. The condition
and position of Texas were such that he could not
have taken the action that was followed by some of
the Union leaders in the Border States, even if he
wished to do so; and when the rest of the South
seceded, Texas was inevitably taken with it. Hous-
ton's sympathies were with his people and with the
South as a section, and when the war began he was
for resistance. His action was by no means governed
by timidity or demagoguery. He showed his per-
sonal courage by opposing the tide of violent popular
feeling at imminent risk, and he surrendered his
office in order to vindicate his judgment. His course
was entirely patriotic and consistent, considering his
feelings and circumstances; and the blame which has
been thrown upon him by Northern advocates of the
Union for not plunging Texas into a civil war within
the limits of the State is wholly undeserved. He
believed in and supported the Union so long as it
was possible without bloodshed; but he gave up the
struggle when it involved a civil war among his own
people.
As a politician in the ordinary sense of the word
Houston was extremely skillful. He was a keen and
accurate judge of personal character, and knew at
once those who would become rivals, and those whom
388 SAM HOUSTON
he could attach to liimseK as supporters. The first
lie attacked without stint, and overwhelmed with
opprobrium and abuse, which aroused their fiercest
indignation. The second he flattered, and attached
to his fortunes by kindly familiarity and practical
service. He was always interested in the welfare of
young men, and ready to give them an opportunity to
display their talents, if he did not believe them dan-
gerous to the public welfare, or in the way of his
personal supremacy. It is not true, however, that he
was intolerant to opinion when it was not manifested
in personal opposition, and his friendship for his col-
league. Senator Rusk, was by no means the result
of political subservience or lack of independence on
the part of the latter. Many of his friends differed
from him without exciting his animosity, and, if de-
termined and masterful, he was not tyrannical. To
personal enemies he was, however, vindictive, and
never spared them any blow which could contribute
to their discomfiture. His enemies complained of his
"Indian cunning," and he was not always straight-
forward in his political action. He was fond of
tricks and surprises, which he apparently practiced
for the love of them, or to excite the admiration of
the people for his shrewdness, and affected an air of
mystery which sometimes angered his friends as well
as his enemies. A specimen of what he termed a
"ruse," in dealing with a troublesome individual, is
given by Mr. Ashbell Smith in his " Reminiscences
of the Texas Republic : " —
CHARACTERISTICS 389
" San Antonio was mucli the largest, richest, most
influential city of Texas of that period. It was re-
mote from the scene of the Texan government. There
was no intervening population between it and the
Mexican frontier. For its protection and that of the
country a considerable squadron of cavalry was sta-
tioned in the city. This squadron was indeed the
only military force of Texas kept mobilized, that was
ready to take the field. Major Western, who com-
manded this body of cavalry, had by some acts and
significant innuendoes intimated that he cared very
little for the one-horse government in the city of
Houston. President Houston was apprehensive that
an order to recall the major or to relieve him might
be disobeyed. It was announced publicly that a
minister would be appointed to represent Texas at
the court of St. James. Colonel William H. Patton
was going to San Antonio on his own private busi-
ness. President Houston, in a long and friendly
conversation with Colonel Patton, at length adverted
as by accident to the proposed mission to England.
He spoke of Major Western, lauded his courtly man-
ners, his polished address, his diplomatic ability; said
the major reminded him strongly of Mr. Van Buren;
asked Colonel Patton what he thought of the appoint-
ment of Major Western to this mission. All this he
begged Colonel Patton to hold in strict confidence, —
'nothing was absolutely determined upon,' — 'Colonel
Patton need not be surprised at anything.' The
President, waiting until he heard of Colonel Patton 's
390 SAM HOUSTON
arrival at San Antonio, sent through the war depart-
ment orders to Major Western to report in person at
the seat of government. The major presented him-
self in Houston, radiant and decorous as Titus at the
head of the Eoman legions organized for the conquest
of Jerusalem. Time rolled on. The major became
visibly impatient despite the gracious accord with
which President Houston greeted him. At length he
began to inquire very quietly who was to be appointed
to England, — he inquired of your speaker, who was
a member of Houston's staff, — but Ashbell Smith
'knew nothing of cabinet matters, he was not a mem-
ber of the Cabinet. ' Finally instructions were being
made out in the state department and General Pink-
ney Henderson was making preparations to leave for
London. The rumor leaked out, — the major 'would
not believe it.' 'President Houston had better judg-
ment of men.' 'What did Henderson know of diplo-
macy? ' The appointment of General Henderson
became an established fact. The major 'was dis-
gusted; ' he 'would go back to San Antonio; ' and he
did, but he found his successor there, well established
in the command of the cavalry. Eeferring to this
matter at the time. General Houston said to your
speaker that he would have no pronunciamentos of
the Mexican fashion in Texas during his presidency.
During his second presidency he had to confront and
ward off the far more perilous danger of the pronun-
ciamentos which were threatened, and which might
have proved disastrous, but for his consummate tact
CHARACTERISTICS 391
in charming them down. Recurring to the incident
just related, General Houston at a subsequent time
provided comfortably for his disappointed old friend,
the major, by placing him at the head of the Indian
bureau."
There are many other anecdotes, perhaps less au-
thentic, of the manner in which Houston tripped up
his political adversaries, or led them into skillfully
laid traps, and the stories of his cunning added to his
stock of admiration among the people.
Specimens of Houston's public speeches have been
given. They show in some degree the defects of his
education. There is not always a skillful or even a
familiar choice of words, and the style is that of the
heavy and somewhat stilted oratory of the time, with-
out the massive polish which sometimes distinguished
it, as in the case of Webster and Calhoun. But at
times it was vivified by the strength of the thought
and feeling behind it, and rose to the height of a dig-
nified and forcible eloquence. His style of popular
oratory has already been sufficiently characterized.
His private speech was vigorous and incisive, and he
often characterized his enemies with powerful force
and humor. His description of Jefferson Davis was
one of those epigrams which may be accepted as the
truth of history, "Ambitious as Lucifer, and cold as
a lizard." Houston had a personal follower by the
name of S , whom he had obliged with small
federal and state offices, and who professed great
devotion to him. During the secession difficulties,
4^
392 SAM HOUSTON
however, he turned against Houston, and violently
attacked and abused him. This was mentioned to
Houston with a condemnation of S 's ingratitude.
"You mustn't be hard on S ," said Houston.
"I was always fond of dogs, and S has all the
virtues of a dog, except his fidelity."
Houston's most conspicuous weaknesses of temper-
ament were his personal vanity and his tendency to
histrionism. The eccentricity and theatrical display
which characterized his dress have been noticed. It
was almost childish in its manifest purpose to attract
attention, and only his magnificent physique could
have carried off his draping himself in an Indian
blanket or a Mexican poncho, and the other bizarre
eccentricities of his attire, without ridicule, and they
were another evidence of the tendencies of a barba-
rian chieftain. They passed in the rude and uncon-
ventional society of the frontier which shared in the
same tendencies and irregularities, but they detracted
from the dignity and sobriety which are the customs
of civilization, and gave an air of melodramatic eccen-
tricity to Houston which was an injury to his weight
and influence. Perhaps no other strong and practi-
cal-minded man has had this weakness in so marked a
degree as Houston, in spite of the record of the early
velvets and laces of Disraeli. His histrionism was
no less marked. An old associate and friendly ob-
server has remarked that Houston was always acting,
that is, always trying to impress the persons he was
with, whether it was in a room or at a public meet-
CHARACTERISTICS 393
ing. Another has said that his air of dignity never
left him, even when drunk, and that he preserved his
native superiority even in the rudest familiarity of
the camp fire or the frontier frolic. This again is
characteristic of the Indian chief. He appreciated
the value of a "scene," like Napoleon, and his out-
bursts of apparently uncontrollable anger were as
artificial as those of his friend and model, Andrew
Jackson. He had the grand air which carried off
the artificiality, as in the case of the elder Pitt, but
there was a sense of the parade in his manner which
alienated practical-minded men, and which only his
real capacity and masterfulness excused. It imposed
upon the people, however, and was one of the sources
of his strength with them. He had a profound sense
of his dignity and importance, and sometimes mani-
fested it in incongruous ways. It was said in jest
that his signature was written so as to read "I am
Houston," instead of "Sam Houston," and, as has
been recorded, he had a habit, when he wished to be
particularly impressive, of speaking of himself in the
third person. He had a good many difficulties about
trifles, and at one time he was sued in the justice
court of Houston by an Irishman who had dug a
well for him. Houston asserted that the man had
left his tools in the well, and that this was an offset
to his claim. Judgment was given against Houston
by default, and he appealed. On the trial of the
appeal he claimed that as a Senator of the United
States he had been called upon by his constituents to
394 SAM HOUSTON
make a speech, and that this was a valid reason for
his absence, so that the case should not have been de-
faulted. He could not understand why his appeal
was rejected on this excuse, and the dignity of his
office as a Senator disregarded. But his sense of
personal dignity had its force under adverse circum-
stances. He never showed any sign of defeat, and
after his deposition as governor he walked the streets
of Austin as if he had been the victor in the contest.
Houston was a man of warm affections and kindly
nature. His manners to women were remarkably
courteous and deferential. His word of address was
not "Madam," but "Lady," and no matter what
their rank or station his impressive politeness and
consideration were always the same. It was not an
affectation, but sprang from a genuine impulse of
respect and chivalric feeling. His family affection
was deep and strong. His second wife, to whom he
owed so much for her influence upon his personal
conduct, was enshrined in his deepest feelings of love
and respect. To borrow Hawthorne's phrase, he had
a smile which children loved, and gained their con-
fidence and affection at once. He was fond of play-
ing with children and telling them stories, and was
constantly engaged in whittling out toys for them
from his supplies of pine sticks. His own children
were brought up in kindly freedom and confidence,
although with a wise and judicious education and
training. His slaves were kindly treated, and were
in a measure members of the family. He was gener-
CHARACTERISTICS 395
ous and helpful to all persons in distress, and his
money and property were at the call of all who
needed assistance. It is recorded that he once pulled
off his coat and gave it to a ragged soldier who had
served at San Jacinto, and his acts of charity were
numerous and spontaneous.
His excesses in liquor were those of his time and
temperament. The mighty men of his era indulged
in tremendous exaltations of intoxication, as they did
in the excitement of combats, from the craving of
their overflowing animal spirits, and fought and
drank with equal appetite. Houston in the worst
period of his indulgence was not an habitual sot, who
drank from a degraded physical appetite, but from
the stimulus of his temperament to excitement, and to
drown grief and disappointment. There was some-
thing Homeric in his debauches, and his freaks of
conduct when under their influence were often of
wild extravagance. His great physical strength dis-
played itself in the smashing of furniture, and his
wild whoops woke the sleepers with apprehensions of
an Indian invasion. But somehow, as has been said,
he kept the respect of the people, and no sense of
degradation attached itself to his excesses. Drunk
or sober Sam Houston was always "Sam Houston."
The limitations of Houston's character will forbid
his being reckoned among the world's great men.
But no one will deny that he was a strong man, ca-
pable of great achievement, practical-minded in spite
of his eccentricities and weaknesses, with wise concep-
396 SAM HOUSTON
tions of statesmanship and policy, determined and
courageous, sincerely patriotic, and devoted to the
welfare of his people. A type of his time and cir-
cumstances, he rose above them by his capacity and
energy, and signalized his own individuality, as well
as illustrated the tendencies and opportunities which
created him. There were others like him, but he
surpassed them all except his prototype, Andrew
Jackson. There will never be another Sam Houston
in American history, for the state of society which
produced him has passed away, and there are no
longer such opportunities for pioneer adventure, and
the creation of a State in the wilderness by aggressive
settlements and the expulsion of a weaker race of col-
onists. He has a marked place in the history of the
nation, for what he represented as well as for; what
he did, and his figure will grow in interest as a type
of a peculiar and, with all its faults, a heroic period.
BOOKS RELATING TO HOUSTON AND THE HIS-
TORY OF TEXAS USED IN THE PREPARATION
OF THIS VOLUME.
Almanac, Texas, Galveston, 1856, et supra.
Anderson, Charles. Texas Before and on the Eve of the Re-
bellion. Cin., 1884.
Audubon, J. J. Life and Journals. New York, 1867.
Baker, D. W. C. Texas Scrap Book. New York, 1875.
Bancroft, H. H. History of North Mexican States and Texas.
2 vols. San Francisco, 1889.
Benton, Thomas H. Thirty Years' View. New York. 2 vols.
1854.
Benton, Thomas H. Abridgment of Debates in Congress.
16 vols. New York, 1851.
Bruce, Henry. Makers of America : Sam Houston. New
York, 1891.
Civil and Military History of Andrew Jackson. By an
American Officer. New York, 1825.
Colton, C. The Life and Times of Henry Clay. 2 vols.
New York, 1846.
Compilation of the Official Records of the Union and Con-
federate Armies. Washington.
Congressional Globe. Washington.
Corner, William. San Antonio de Bexar. San Antonio,
1890.
Crane, William Carey. Life and Select Literary Remains of
Sam Houston. Phil., 1884.
Crockett, David. Exploits and Adventures in Texas. New
York, 1845.
398 BOOKS RELATING TO HOUSTON
De Cordova, J. Texas, Its Resources and Its Public Men.
Phil., 1858.
Dewees. Letters from Texas. Louisville, 1858.
Domenech, L'Abbd E. Journal d'un Missionaire au Texas
et au Mexique. Paris, 1857.
Duval, John C. Adventures of Big Foot Wallace, the Texas
Ranger and Hunter. Phil., 1873.
Duval, John C. Early Times in Texas. Austin, 1892.
Dyer, Oliver. Great Senators of the United States. New
York, 1881.
Edwards, D. B. History of Texas. Cin., 1836.
Featherstonehaugh, G. W. Excursion through the Slave
States. New York, 1839.
Foote, H. G. Texas and the Texans. 2 vols. Phil., 1841.
Gouge, Wm. M. Fiscal History of Texas. Phil., 1852.
Graham, Rev. John. Diary of the Siege of Londonderry.
Londonderry, 1823.
Greeley, Horace. The American Conflict. 2 vols. Hartford,
1873.
Green, Thomas J. Journal of the Texas Expedition Against
Mier. New York, 1845.
HoUey, Mary Austin. Texas. Lexington, Ky., 1856.
Hooton, Charles. St. Louis Isle, or Texiana. London, 1847.
Horton, Col. Alexander. Sketch of the War of '36. Eastern
Texas. San Augustine, 1857.
Houston, Mrs. Texas and the Gulf of Mexico. London, 1848.
Houston, Sam, The Life of. New York, 1855.
Howard, H. R. The Life of Virgil A. Stewart. (The John
A. Murrell Conspiracy.) New York, 1836.
Hutchison, Rev. I. R., D. D. Reminiscences, Sketches, and
Addresses. Houston, 1879.
Johnston, Wm. Preston. Life of Gen. Albert Sidney John-
ston. New York, 1878.
Jones, Anson. Memoranda and Official Correspondence Re-
lating to the Republic of Texas. New York, 1859.
BOOKS RELATING TO HOUSTON 399
Kendal, G. W. Texas Santa F^ Expedition. London, 1849.
Kennedy, William. The Rise, Progress, and Prospects of the
Republic of Texas. 2 vols. London, 1841.
Lester, C. Edwards. Sam Houston and his Republic. New
York, 1846.
Linn, John J. Reminiscences of Fifty Years in Texas. New
York, 1883.
Maillard, N. Doran. The History of the Republic of Texas.
London, 1842.
Mayo, Robert. Political Sketches of Eight Years in Washing-
ton. Washington, 1839.
Miranda. Expedition. In a Series of Letters. Boston, 1809.
Morrell, Rev. Z. N. Flowers and Fruits of the Wilderness.
Thirty-six Years in Texas. Boston, 1873.
Newell, Rev. C. History of the Revolution in Texas. New
York, 1838.
Niles' Register. Washington.
North, Thomas. Five Years in Texas, from 1861 to 1866.
Cin., 1871.
Olmstead, Frederick Law. A Journey through Texas. New
York, 1857.
Parker, A. A. Trip to the West and Texas. Concord,
N. H., 1836.
Parker, W. G. Unexplored Texas. Phil., 1856.
Parton, James. Life of Andrew Jackson. 3 vols. New
York, 1860.
Paxton, Philip. A Stray Yankee in Texas. New York, 1857.
Pierce, Edward L. Memoir and Letters of Charles Sumner.
4 vols. Boston, 1893.
Phelan, James. American Commonwealths. Tennessee.
Boston, 1887.
Robinson, Wm. Davis. Narrative of the Expedition of Gen.
Xavier Mina. Phil., 1820.
Roche, James Jeffrey. The Story of the Filibusters. London,
1892.
400 BOOKS RELATING TO HOUSTON
Roosevelt, Theodore. American Statesmen. Thomas H. Ben-
ton. Boston, 1887.
Sharp, Wm. Preston. The Prisoners of Perote. Phil., 1845.
Shipman, Daniel. Frontier Life. Houston, Texas, 1879.
Schurz, Carl. American Statesmen. Henry Clay. 2 vols.
Boston, 1887.
Schwartz, Stephan. Twenty-Two Months a Prisoner of War
m Texas. St. Louis, 1892.
Smith, Ashbell. Reminiscences of the Texas Republic. Gal-
veston, 1876.
Thompson, Waddy. Recollections of Mexico. New York,
1847.
Thrall, Rev. Homer S. A Pictorial History of Texas. St.
Louis, 1881.
Thrall, Rev. Homer S. Life of Sam Houston. Round Table
Magazine. Dallas, 1892-93.
Truman, Ben. C. The Field of Honor. New York, 1884.
Ward, H. G. Mexico. 2 vols. London, 1829.
Wilburger, J. W. Indian Depredations in Texas. Austin,
1890.
INDEX
Alamo, description of, 140, 143 ; capture
of, 149 et seq.
Almonte, Col. Juan N., report on condi-
tion of Texas, 55-59 ; protects Mrs.
Dickenson, 151 ; surrenders at San
Jacinto, 201.
Alsbury, Mrs., survives massacre at
Alamo, 151.
Antonio, San, description of, 102; cap-
ture of, 110 et seq.
Archer, Branch T., settles in Texas, 75 ;
President of Consultation, 117 ; com-
missioner to United States, 121 ; Presi-
dent Texas Railroad Co., 231.
Archives, War of, 273, 274.
Audrade, Gen., commands Mexican cav-
alry, 138.
Audubon, J. J., visits Houston, 246.
Austin, Col. John, captures Velasco, 72.
Austin, Moses, obtains concession in
Texas, 61 ; death, 61.
Austin, Stephen F., birth, 61 ; goes to
Texas, 62 ; returns from Mexico, 72
delegate to Mexico, 87 ; arrested, 88
released, 93 ; given public dinner, 94
elected commander-in-chief, 98 ; re-
signs, 106 ; commissioner to United
States, 121 ; raises money for Texas,
134 ; Secretary of State, 229 ; death,
245.
Bache, Richard, votes against annexa-
tion, 290.
Baker, Capt. Moseley, attacks provi-
sional government, 122 ; insubordina-
tion of, 192.
Baker, Rev. William M., anecdote by,
248, 249.
Bell, Senator, votes against Kansas-Ne-
braska bill, 313.
Benton, Thomas H., eulogizes Houston,
21 ; favors recognition of Texan inde-
pendence, 235 ; opposes Kansas-Ne-
braska bill, 313.
Bercero, Sergt., describes battle of Ala-
mo, 153.
Bernard, Dr. Joseph, report of wounded
at Alamo, 152 ; rescued at Goliad,
178.
Bonham, Col. J. B., joins Alamo garri-
son, 143 ; takes message to Fannin,
147 ; death, 150.
Bowie, James, settles in Texas, 76 ; com-
mands at battle of Concepcion, 102;
character, 143 ; death, 150.
Bowie, Rezin P., settles in Texas, 76.
Bradburn, Col. John D., commands at
Anahuac, 71 ; deprived of command,
72.
Biurleson, Col. Edward, succeeds Austin
in command of the army, 106 ; re-
ceives surrender of San Antonio, 114 ;
resigns, 114 ; commands centre at San
Jacinto, 199; Vice-President, 262
commands at San Antonio, 268.
Burnett, David G., settles in Texas, 75
President of the Republic, 159 ; pro
tests against demands of army, 220 .
resigns, 228 ; Vice-President, 249 ; ad-
ministers government, 261.
Burton, Capt. Isaac W., captures Mexi-
can vessels, 227.
Caldwell, Capt. Matthew, fights invad-
ing force, 275.
Calhoun, John C, rebukes Houston, 20 ;
opposes prohibition of slavery in Ore-
gon, 299.
Cameron, Capt. Ewan, shot by Mexicans,
277.
Carson, Samuel P., Secretary of State,
159 ; letter of, 159.
Castenada, Capt., defeated at Gonzales,
96.
CastriUon, commands Mexican artil-
lery, 138 ; pleads for prisoners, 151 ;
death, 201.
Cave, E. W., declines to take oath to
Confederacy, 157.
Chambers, Thomas J., settles in Texas,
76.
Clark, Edward, succeeds Houston as
governor, 357 ; interview with Hous-
ton, 358 ; writes to President Davis,
365.
Clay, Henry, favors recognition of
Texas, 221 ; opposes its annexation,
285.
Coleto, battle of, 168, 169.
Collingsworth, Capt. George, captures
Goliad, 99.
Collingsworth, James, commissioner to
United States, 221 ; death, 229.
Concepcion, battle of, 104 et seq.
402
INDEX
Cook, Col. P. St. G., arrests Texan
troops, 277.
Cos, Gen. Martin Perfect© de, takes
command in Coahuila, 91 ; marches to
Bexar, 94 ; surrenders San Antonio,
113 ; leads attack on Alamo, 149 ; re-
inforces Santa Anna, 197 ; made pris-
oner, 208.
Crockett, David, character, 143 ; joins
Alamo garrison, 143 ; death, 150.
Dawson, Capt. N., defeated by Mexicans,
275.
Dickenson, Mrs. A. M,, survives Alamo
massacre, 151.
Douglas, Senator, introduces bill to
repeal Missouri Compromise, 306 ; at-
tacks New England clergymen, 314.
Duque, Col., wounded at Alamo, 149.
Dyer, Oliver, description of Houston,
327-329.
Edwards, Hayden, incites Fredonian
war, 60.
Edwards, Munroe, singular career of,
71, 72.
Ellis, Richard, President of Convention,
155.
Evans, Major T. C, attempts to blow up
Alamo, 150.
Fannin, Col. James W., commands at
battle of Concepcion, 103 ; appointed
" agent " by Council, 128 ; elected
colonel of volunteers, 131 ; attempts
to relieve Alamo, 148 ; retreats from
Goliad, 167 ; surrenders, 171 ; death,
179.
Farias, Gomez, President of Mexico,
87 ; arrests Austin, 88 ; banished, 89.
Filisola, Gen. Vincente, second in com-
mand of Mexican army, 138 ; retreats,
207 ; suspended, 225.
Fisher, Col. "WiUiam S., invades Mexico,
276.
Flores, Manuel, agent to Indians, 251 ;
kiUed, 251.
Gaines, Gen. E. P., moves troops into
Texas, 214.
Gaona, Gen. , commands brigade in Mex-
ican army, 138.
Garay, Col., rescues prisoners at Goliad,
178.
Goliad, Massacre of, 175 et seq.
GoUaday, Frederic, letter of, 24.
GoUaday, Isaac, befriends Houston, 23.
Grant, Dr. James, organizes expedition
to invade Mexico, 125 ; death, 164.
Grayson, Peter, commissioner to United
States, 221 ; death, 249.
Green, Gen. Duff, protests against award
of contract to Houston, 42.
Green, Gen. T. F., arrests Santa Anna,
219 ; escapes from Perote, 277.
Hamilton, Gen. James, minister to Great
Britain and France, 258 ; attempts to
negotiate loan, 259 ; proposes treaty
with Mexico, 269.
Hardiman, Baily, Secretary of the
Treasury, 159.
Hays, Col. John C, draws out Mexican
troops, 275.
Hebert, Geo. P. D., commands de-
partment of Texas, 372.
Henderson, Geo. J. Pinkney, minister
to Great Britain, 229.
Herrera, President, agrees to treaty
with Texas, 289.
Hockley, George W., chief -of -staff to
Houston, 159 ; commands artillery at
San Jacinto, 199.
Holzinger, Lieut. -Col., receives surren-
der of Fannin's troops, 173.
Horton, Capt., driven off from Fannin,
178.
Houston, Mrs. Eliza, marriage, 34 ; sep-
aration from Houston, 36.
Houston, Mrs. Elizabeth, removes to
Tennessee, 3; sends her son to the
war, 13.
Houston, John, emigrates to America, 2.
Houston, Mrs. M. H., description of
Houston, 242-244.
Houston, Mrs. Margaret M., marriage,
248.
Houston, Robert, settles in Virginia, 2.
Houston, Samuel, Sr., career, 2, 3.
Houston, Sam, birth, 1 ; ancestry, 1, 2 ;
education, 3, 4 ; runs away to the
Cherokees, 5, 6 ; keeps school, 8 ;
enlists, 10 ; appointed ensign, 11 ;
wounded at To-ho-pe-ka, 14 ; carried
home, 17 ; appointed lieutenant, 18 ;
sub-agent of Cherokees, 18 ; attacked
by slave-traders, 20 ; resigns from the
army, 20 ; studies law, 22 ; prosecut-
ing attorney, 26; major-general of
militia, 26 ; Representative in Con-
gress, 26 ; writes against Clay, 27 ;
fights duel with Gen. White, 29, 30 ;
anecdotes of controversies, 31, 32;
reminiscences of, by Col. D. D. Clai-
borne, 33 ; resigns the governorship,
34 ; separation from his wife, 34-36 ;
goes to Indian Territory, 37 ; Indian
life, 38 et seq. ; incurs hostility of In-
dian ring, 42 ; assaults Hon. William
Stanberry, 45 ; tried for breach of
privilege of the House, 46-49 ; takes
up with Indian wife, 50 ; duel with
employee, 51 ; goes to Texas, 74, 75 ;
anecdote of journey, 78 ; holds coun-
cil with Indians at San Antonio, 79 ;
reports to Jackson, 79-81 ; life at
Washington , 82 ; makes arrangement
with Indians, 93 ; elected comman-
der of troops in eastern Texas, 97
declines to supersede Austin, 110
approves absolute independence, 120
elected commander-in-chief, 121 ; is-
sues proclamation, 123 ; complains to
Governor Smith, 129 ; discourages ex-
INDEX
403
pedition to Matamoras, 133 ; elected
delegate to Convention, 133 ; prepares
" solemn declaration " in behalf of
Indians, 134; makes treaty with In-
dians, 136 ; reelected commander-in-
chief, 157 ; leaves for Gonzales, 159 ;
orders Fannin to abandon Goliad, 161 ;
retreats from Gonzales, 163 ; falls
back to the Brazos, 186 ; moves up
the river, 189 ; moves in pursuit of
Santa Anna, 192 ; orders Vince's bridge
cut down, 199 ; commands battle of
San Jacinto, 200 ; wounded, 202 ; sug-
gests terms of treaty with Santa
Anna, 209 ; issues farewell address
to soldiers, 210 ; removed to New
Orleans, 211 ; letter to Col. Raguet,
215 ; reception at New Orleans, 222 ;
returns to Texas, 222 ; protests against
execution of Santa Anna, 223 ; elected
President, 228 ; inaugural address,
229 ; interview with Santa Anna, 231 ;
releases Santa Anna, 232 ; message to
Congress, 237 ; disbands army, 240 ;
manages finances, 243, 244 ; manner
of life, 24G; marriage to Miss Lea,
248 ; defends Indians, 252 ; opposes
Santa F6 expedition, 256 ; reelected
President, 262 ; measures of economy,
263 ; Indian talk, 2G5-267 ; letter to
Santa Anna, 269, 270 ; vetoes army
bill, 271 ; declares blockade of Mexi-
can ports, 272 ; appeals to European
governments, 276 ; letter to Jackson,
280 ; letter to Minister Murphy, 282 ;
last message to Congress, 288 ; elected
Senator, 296 ; first speech, 297 ; op-
poses extension of slavery to Oregon,
300 ; defends Father Matthew, 303 ;
reelected Senator, 305 ; opposes Kan-
sas-Nebraska bill, 306 et seq. ; defends
Indians, 310 et seq. ; defends New
England clergymen, 313; movement
to nominate for presidency, 318 ; criti-
cises Kossuth, 319 ; voted for in
Know-Nothing Convention, 320 ; de-
feated for Senator, 323 ; defeated for
governor, 323 ; advocates protecto-
rate over Mexico, 323 ; farewell speech
in Senate, 325 ; "conversion," 329-
331 ; nominated for governor, 335 ;
canvass, 330-338 ; election, 338 ; at-
titude toward secession, 339 et seq. ;
letter to Gen. Twiggs, 346, 347 ; let-
ter to Col. Waite, 351, 352; speech
at Galveston, 354 ; letter to Secre-
tary Walker, 356 ; deposition, 357 ;
speech at Houston, 365 ; speech at
Baylor University, 366 ; letter to
Governor Lubbock, 372 ; congratulates
Gen. Magruder, 373 ; relieves officers
of Harriet Lane, 373 ; last speech,
373, 374 ; death, 376 ; will, 377, 378 ;
character, 378 et seq.
Hunt, Gen. Memucan, commissioner to
United States, 229.
Huston, Gen. Felix, recruits volunteers
in Mississippi, 218; duel with Gen.
A. S. Johnston, 239.
Huston, James, signs address to Eline
William III., 2.
Iverson, Senator, controversy with
Houston, 325: denounces Houston,
342.
Jackson, Andrew, commands at To-ho-
pe-ka, 12, 13 ; Senator from Tennes-
see, 27 ; sympathetic letter to Hous-
ton, 41 ; entertains Santa Anna in
Washington, 272 ; message relating to
Texas, 234; approves resolution for
recognition of independence, 235 ; fa-
vors annexation, 255 ; death, 295.
Johnson, Cave, acts as friend to Hous-
ton, 44.
Johnson, Col. F. W., second in command
in attack on San Antonio, 109 ; em-
powered by Council to take command
of expedition against Matamoras, 127 ;
escape from San Patricio, 164.
Johnston, Albert Sidney, joins Texan
army, 239 ; appointed brigadier-gen-
eral, 239 ; duel with Gen. Felix Hus-
ton, 239 ; commands expedition against
Indians, 251.
Jones, Anson, criticises Houston's con-
duct at battle of San Jacinto, 213 ; re-
calls Minister Smith, 287 ; President
of Texas, 288.
Key, Francis Scott, counsel for Hous-
ton, 46.
King, Capt., sent to relief of Refugio,
165; death, 166.
Kossuth, Louis, interview with Houston,
319.
Lamar, Mirabeau B. , commands cavalry
at San Jacinto, 200 ; protests against
release of Santa Anna, 218 ; appointed
to command army, 226 ; Vice-Presi-
dent, 228 ; President, 249 ; policy of,
259 et seq. ; sends expedition to Santa
F^, 257 ; abdicates, 260 ; opposes an-
nexation, 289.
Lander, Col. F. W., sent to Texas, 248;
advice to Col. Waite, 352.
Lee, Col. R. E., superseded by Gen.
Twiggs, 245.
Lester, C . Edwards, describes meeting
of Houston with Indians, 315, 316.
Lincoln^ President, sends messenger to
Texas, 348 ; offers major-general's
commission to Houston, 361.
Lockhart, Matilda, released by Indians,
253.
McLeod, Gen., commands Santa F^ ex-
pedition, 257.
M'Culloch, Benjamin, commands troops
at San Antonio, 349.
Meigs, Gen. Return J., agent to Chero-
kees, 19.
404
INDEX
Mexia, Gen., disgraceful conduct in ex-
pedition to Tampico, 115.
Milam, Col. Benjamin F., arrested in
Coaliuila, 91 ; joins attack on Goliad,
92 ; calls for volunteers to attack San
Antonio, 104 ; death. 111.
Millard, Lieut.-Col,, commands infaiftry
at San Jacinto, 199.
Miller, Capt., captured at Copano, 175.
Moore, Com. E. W., commands Texan
navy, 255 ; sails for Yucatan, 272.
Moore, Col. John H., commands at Gon-
zales, 96 ; defeats Comanches, 251.
Morfitt, Henry, commissioner to Texas,
221 ; report of, 234.
Murphy, Col. "William S., minister to
Texas, 280.
North, Thomas, anecdote by, 353 ; de-
scription of Houston at review, 368,
369.
O'Connell, Daniel, opposes recognition
of Texas, 259.
Palmerston, Lord, recognizes independ-
ence of Texas, 258.
Parmer, Col. Martin, anecdotes of, 59, 60.
Pierce, Franklin, President, 305.
Polk, James K., favors annexation, 289.
PortiUa, Col., ordered to execute pris-
oners at Goliad, 175.
Potter, Robert, Secretary of the Navy,
159.
Ripley, Henry, wounded at Coleto, 171.
Robertson, John C, President Commit-
tee of Public Safety, 344.
Robinson, James W., Lieut.-Gov., 124;
proposes treaty with Mexico, 257.
Runnels, Hamilton R., defeats Houston
for governorship, 322 ; secession mes-
sage, 334 ; defeated by Houston, 338.
Rusk, Thomas J., settles in Texas, 76;
Secretary of War, 139 ; joins army,
190 ; opposes attack at San Jacinto,
198 ; at battle of San Jacinto, 200 ;
disbands army, 241 ; Senator of the
United States, 296 ; death, 322.
Saligny, M. de, minister from France,
259.
Santa Anna, Antonio Lopez de, charac-
ter and career, 83, 85 ; wins battle
of Zacatecas, 90 ; takes command of
army of invasion, 138 ; besieges Alamo,
145 ; orders massacre of prisoners at
Goliad, 175 ; starts to join Gen. Sesma,
183 ; captures Harrisburg, 191 ; alarm
at New Washington, 195 ; flight from
San Jacinto, 201 ; capture of, 204 ;
orders troops to withdraw from Texas,
207 ; signs treaty, 211 ; arrested, 218 ;
plots to release, 227 ; interview with
Houston, 231 ; release of, 232 ; repu-
diates debt to Col. Bee, 233 ; deposes
Bustamente, 267 ; letter to Houston,
269.
Santa F«5, expedition to, 257, 258.
Sesma, Gen., sent to relief of Gen. Cos,
137 ; crosses Colorado River, 190.
Scott, Gen. W., orders Col. Waite to
offer assistance to Houston, 351.
Shackleford, Dr., rescued at Goliad, 177.
Sherman, Col. Sidney, commands left
wing at San Jacinto, 199.
Simpson, Rev. J. W., account of Hous-
ton's conversion, 324 et seq.
Smith, Ashbell, minister to England,
286 ; anecdote by, 291, 384.
Smith, Erasmus, character, 106 ; cuts
down Vince's bridge, 199 ; at battle of
San Jacinto, 202.
Smith, Capt. J. W., enters Alamo, 147 ;
escapes with message, 152.
Smith, Henry, settles in Texas, 76 ; gov-
ernor, 121 ; quarrels with Council,
124 et seq. ; deposed, 130 ; Secretary
of the Treasury, 239.
Snively, Capt. Jacob S., commands ex-
pedition to New Mexico, 277.
Somerville, Gen. Alexander, conunands
Texan troops, 268 ; leads expedition
to Rio Grande, 276.
Stewart, Hamilton, anecdote by, 371,
372.
Sumner, Charles, assault on, by Brooks,
314 ; opinion of Houston, 329.
Sylvester, James T., captures Santa
Anna, 205.
Taylor, Zachary, President, 301 ; asserts
authority in New Mexico, 302.
Texas, early settlement of, 53 et seq. ;
character of settlers of, 64 et seq. ;
convention to ask separation from
Coahuila, 86 ; general council of citi-
zens, 98 ; General Consultation, 117 ;
declaration of provisional independ-
ence, 118, 120 ; provisional govern-
ment, 121 ; bounty for volunteers,
123 ; General Convention, 155 ; decla-
ration of independence, 156 ; consti-
tution, 160 ; operations of the navy,
212 ; first Congress, 228 ; army dis-
banded, 240 ; land grants, 241 ;
finances, 242 ; under Lamar's adminis-
tration, 260 et seq. ; navy of, 272 ;
disturbances in neutral ground, 274 ;
annexation, 280 et seq. ; boundary,
302 ; public debt, 303 ; secession, 333
et seq. ; union with the Confederacy,
356.
Thomas, David, attorney-general, 159.
Thompson, T. M., depredations on the
coast, 96.
To-ho-pe-ka, battle of, 13 et seq.
Tolsa, Gen., commands brigade in Mex-
ican army, 138.
Travis, Col. William B., takes command
at Alamo, 132 ; character, 143 ; appeals
for assistance, 144 ; death, 150.
Twiggs, Gen. David E., commands de-
partment of Texas, 345 ; reply to
Houston, 347 ; surrenders troops, 350.
INDEX
405
Tyler, President John, favors annexa-
tion, 279.
Ugartchea, Col., captured at Velasco,
72 ; demands surrender of cannon, at
Gonzales, 95; relieves San Antonio,
112.
Urrea, Gen. , sent to Matamoras, 138 ;
captures San Patricio, 164 ; attacks
Fannin's troops, 269 ; supersedes FiM-
sola, 225.
Van Buren, Martin, opposes annexation,
286.
Van Dorn, Col., compels surrender of
U.-S. troops, 351.
Van Zandt, Isaac, minister to Washing-
ton, 279.
Viesca, Augustin, governor of Coahuila,
90 ; arrested, 91.
Waite, Col. Carlos A., succeeds Gen.
Twiggs, 350; reports to Gen. Scott,
350.
Ward, Col. William, defends Refugio,
166 ; death, 179.
Walker, Hon. R. J., introduces resolu-
tion for recognition of the independ-
ence of Texas, 235.
Wharton, John A. , settles in Texas, 76 ;
escapes from Mexico, 244.
Wharton, William H., settles in Texas,
76 ; commissioner to United States,
121 ; minister to United States, 229 ;
captured, 244.
Wigfall, Louis T., Senator of the United
States, 322 ; denounces Houston, 342.
Wise, Henry A., attacks Houston, 321.
Woll, Gen. Adrian, sent to Texan camp,
208 ; invades Texas, 275.
Zavala, Lorenzo de, flees to Texas, 91 ;
Vice-President, 159 ; joins army, 190 :
death, 244.
^oofes on ^i0ffrapf)p
John T. Morse, Jr.
John Quincy Adams. In American Statesmen
Series. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25 ; half morocco, ^2.50.
Thomas Jefferson. In American Statesmen Se-
ries. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25 ; half morocco, ^2.50.
John Adams. In American Statesmen Series.
i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25 ; half morocco, ^2.50.
Benjamin Franklin. In American Statesmen
Series. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25 ; half morocco, ^2.50.
Abraham Lincohi. In American Statesmen Se-
ries. With Portrait and Map. 2 vols. i6mo, ^2.50; half
morocco, ^5.00.
Theodore Roosevelt.
Thomas H. Benton. In American Statesmen
Series. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25; half morocco, ^2.50.
Gouverneur Morris. In American Statesmen
Series. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25 ; half morocco, ^2.50.
Carl Schurz.
Henry Clay. In American Statesmen Series.
2 vols. i6mo, gilt top, ^2.50; half morocco, $5.00.
Abraham Lincoln. An Essay. With Portrait.
i6mo,gilttop,^i.oo.
Horace E. Scudder.
Noah Webster. In American Men of Letters
Series. With Portrait. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25 ; half mo-
rocco, ^2.50.
George Washington. An Historical Biography.
In Riverside Library for Young People. With Portrait
and Illustrations. i6mo, 75 cents.
William P. Trent.
William Gilmore Simms. In American Men of
Letters Series. With Portrait. i6mo, gilt top, ^1.25.
HOUGHTON, MIFFLIN &^ CO., Publishers.
^oofefi on ^ioffrapl)j)
James Elliot Cabot.
A Memoir of Ralph Waldo Emerson. With
new Portrait. 2 vols, crown 8vo, gilt top, ^3.50 ; half calf,
^6.00.
Large-Paper Edition, uniform with the Large-
Paper Riverside Edition of Emerson's Works formerly
published. Limited to 500 copies. With Portrait. 2 vols.
Svo, boards, uncut, ^10.00, net.
Thomas Carlyle and R. W. Emerson.
Correspondence of Carlyle and Emerson, 1834-
1872. Edited by Charles Eliot Norton. Including newly-
found Letters and with new Portraits. 2 vols, crown Svo,
gilt top, ^4.00 ; half calf, or half morocco, ^8.00.
'^^^ Library Edition. i2mo, $3.00; half calf,
J^6.oo.
George Willis Cooke.
George Eliot : A Critical Study of her Life,
Writings, and Philosophy. With Portrait. i2mo, ^2.00;
half calf, $4.00.
Ralph Waldo Emerson : His Life, Writings, and
Philosophy. With Portrait. In one volume, i2mo, ^2.00 ;
half calf, ^4.00.
Thomas De Quincey.
Autobiographic Sketches. Riverside Edition.
i2mo, ^1.50.
Autobiographic Sketches. Popular Edition.
i6mo, ^i.oo.
Literary Reminiscences. Popular Edition.
i6mo, ^i.oo.
Biographical and Historical Essays. Popular
Edition. i6mo, ^i.oo,
Edward Waldo Emerson. *
Emerson in Concord. A Memoir. Written for
the " Social Circle " in Concord, Massachusetts. With
new Portrait. Crown Svo, gilt top, ^1.75.
HOUGHTON, MIFFLIN 6r^ CO., Publishers,
^Z
•inf^rt
/^ "^^o^
^ o^
7-
^^di
^
V^
'^<
■^ ■" /
S 9^
1 2 vJ^
y c s -» ^ /■ v^
^ ^^ °.
.^ 9^ o
A Z
^
^ J
\
. oX
0,.-
V ^ ^ '
V * ^ '^.